Id | Vlad | Saved | Scrape Time | Status | Scrape Result | Original Ad | Adarchiveid | Creative Links | Title | Body | Cta Type | Link Url | Pageid | Page Name | Page Profile Uri | Page Like Count | Collationcount | Collationid | Currency | Enddate | Entitytype | Fevinfo | Gatedtype | Hasuserreported | Hiddensafetydata | Hidedatastatus | Impressionstext | Impressionsindex | Isaaaeligible | Isactive | Isprofilepage | Cta Text | Pageinfo | Pageisdeleted | Pagename | Reachestimate | Reportcount | Ad Creative | Byline | Caption | Dynamic Versions | Effective Authorization Category | Display Format | Link Description | Link Url | Page Welcome Message | Creation Time | Page Profile Picture Url | Page Entity Type | Page Is Profile Page | Instagram Actor Name | Instagram Profile Pic Url | Instagram Url | Instagram Handle | Is Reshared | Version | Branded Content | Current Page Name | Disclaimer Label | Page Is Deleted | Root Reshared Post | Additional Info | Ec Certificates | Country Iso Code | Instagram Branded Content | Spend | Startdate | Statemediarunlabel | Actions |
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
2,664,113 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664088}' |
Yes | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
đHOT! HOT!Do not read in publicďźđ | My husband and mate, Elijah, is the Alpha of one of the most powerful packs in Fenrisa, the Iron Claw Pack. I am his wife and his mate. One would think that due to being fated, our relationship would be a good one. But thatâs far from the truth. The truth is, I am his second chance mate. âVerena, I want to reject our bond and get separated,â Elijahâs voice doesn't hold an ounce of emotion as he sits across from me in the dim living room. I'd been waiting for him to celebrate our third wedding anniversary together. But when he arrived, there was this coldness about him. I figured he was just tired from work, but then he asked me to sit down and dropped a bombshell on me. "Why?" I blink in disbelief. He must be joking, right? But the intensity of his gaze chips away at my doubt, replacing it with a growing sense of worry. I know the reason. The one I've feared the most for so long. His mate has returned to the pack. Elijahâs first mate had left him just before the mating ceremony. The reason was unknown, but everyone assumed that she didnât want a relationship with her mate and loved someone else. On the same day of their separation, Elijah found me and realized that I am his second chance mate. Second chance mates are rare, and it can be called a miracle that the Goddess gives Elijah a second chance in love by mating us. He hasnât rejected his first mate, but one can find a second mate irrespective of rejecting their first mate. It's complicated and goes against the laws of the mate bond. Yet it's a blessing to the ones whose first mate dies or leaves them. Elijah sighs, âYou know about Nixie. She wants to be back with me.â I clench my fist. âAnd you want to get back with her?â My lips quiver, and I struggle to stop my body from trembling, but it's futile. Despite being Elijahâs second chance, heâs my first. My first mate, the only love of my life. No matter who your second chance is, the bond with the first mate is stronger, like the first love that you canât move on from. Elijah feels the same towards Nixie, I know, but can I simply accept it? His face remains aloof, âNixie needs me, Verena. She is my mate and my wolf needs her.â His first mate returned a week ago, claiming that she was kidnapped by our enemy pack and taken hostage for three years. The pack that captured her was destroyed due to a pack war, and the hostages were released. Thatâs how Nixie escaped and returned to our pack. "I canât have two mates at the same time. Having you both is putting a lot of pressure and weakening my wolf. Over time, itâll get worse. So, Iâll have to reject one," he adds in a calm voice, while a storm is rising in my chest. "And you choose her," I reply, tears brimming in my eyes. I knew that Elijah hadnât moved on from his first mate when I entered his life. But I had believed that I could heal him and show him that I can love him more. I did everything in my power to make him happy when we got married. Yet, sheâs the one he chooses. What about us? The relationship we built for all these years, does it mean nothing to him? When I walked into his life, he was emotionally unavailable and rude to me. But I stayed patient and he gradually started to warm up to me. Since then we had worked together on everything and he promised to stay beside me forever. I know that I wonât be able to bear him a healthy child because I did not shift after I turned eighteen and it's been five years since I have been wolf-less. But I felt the mate bond when I saw Elijah at the Mating Ball. He also agreed to marry me because his pack needed a Luna and it was better to have a second chance mate than have no mate at all. âYou said you'd never leave me. You promised me,â I remind him. âHow can you break it because of someone who left you years ago?â His icy presence sends a chill through the room. "Rena, watch your words. Remember who you're speaking to," he warns, his tone sharp like a blade. "And do you expect me to overlook the fact that you intentionally drove Nixie away because you wanted to be with me?" My brows raise, âWhat are you talking about?â He stands from the couch, âYou think I donât know? Nixie returned to this pack just one year after our marriage and wanted to meet me. But you met her first and threatened her to not come close to me and disappear from the pack.â A shadow falls on his chiseled face, making him look deadly and dangerous. I have always admired his ruthless side, especially when he makes sure to punish anyone who tries to hurt me. But today, heâs giving me this look as if heâs disgusted by me. âBecause of you, Nixie could not contact me and tell me what happened to her. I couldnât be there for her when she needed me. Just because of you.â He accuses me, and I feel like I have been stabbed in the chest. âI did not!â I say and he tilts his head as if he did not expect that response from me. As much as I want Elijah all to myself, I know that he feels empty without Nixie. So I would have accepted them being together, just for the sake of Elijahâs happiness. He raises a brow, âSo you are not going to admit it?â âAdmit what? I have no idea what you are talking about.â I protest. "Fine, I'll call him then," Elijah's obsidian eyes glaze over as he connects through the mind-link. Seconds later, the door swings open and Joshua walks inside. âWhatâs the matter?â He asks as he looks at both of us. He is Elijahâs Beta. âRena denies that she had not tried to kick Nixie out of the pack when she returned two years ago. Is that true?â I look at Joshua expectantly. He will tell Elijah the truth. I relax a little, waiting for the truth to come out. But why do I have this bad feeling? âNo, I saw her two years ago with the Luna,â Joshua replies calmly, with a subtle smile on his face. âThe Luna did threaten her and tell her to leave the pack.â What?! âJoshua, what the hell are you saying?! I didn't even meet Nixie!â I rise from my seat in shock and look at him in disbelief. âKeep your voice low, Rena. Joshua is saying what he saw and I am surprised that you believed heâd lie for you. After all, heâs the one who showed me pictures of your encounter with my mate.â Elijah throws the pictures on the table and it feels like someone has pulled the rug off my feet. These are from a different time. They are manipulated. I look at the Beta who gives me a smirk. He betrayed me. I thought we were good friends but⌠My shoulders slump as I look at the floor. This canât be happening. âDo you have any evidence that the Beta is lying?â Elijah asks. I donât have an answer. My head spins, trying to process everything that has happened. âNo,â I whisper. If I had known that heâll betray me like this, I would have been more cautious. But why would he do this? For a few minutes, silence hangs heavy in the air until Elijah gently grasps my chin, coaxing me to meet his gaze. His inky black hair falls messily across his face, reminding me of its softness when I touched it before. âIt's over, Rena. You knew how much I loved Nixie, yet you pushed her away from me. Then you pretended to love me when all you wanted was the power and wealth that comes with being my wife. I canât let any of this slip away.â he says, his voice gentle but deep and chilling. Pretend to love him? After all these years, he thinks it was an act. I know I donât have any evidence to prove my innocence, but wonât he try to believe me for once? I canât help but wonder if he would have believed Nixie if she was in my shoes. He would have probably forgiven her, because mates tend to be possessive of their partners. But he wonât treat me like that, because according to him, I am just his second chance. I am nothing compared to his first true mate, his first love. Tears glisten in my eyes as pain grips my heart. "Elijah, I mean it. I don't care about the position. I just want you." He growls, baring his canines and his eyes flash, âI had enough. You should be grateful that I am not imprisoning you for doing something like this. So if you donât want to live in the cells, I advise you to accept the divorce and the rejection.â He lets go of my chin and retrieves the divorce agreement. He slaps it onto the coffee table, making me flinch. "Sign it.â I stare at the papers with a bleeding heart. All the good memories I had with him flash in my head. What did all of those moments mean? Was it a lie when he said that I make him smile? That I am special to him? That our bond is no lesser than a first mate bond? I slowly bend forward, and grab the pen. I sign the paper while holding back my tears.âHere, it's done,â I whisper while holding the divorce agreement. For a brief moment, the iciness in his gaze melts, replaced by shock and hurt. But he swiftly regains his composure and accepts the paper from me. A sad smile curves my lips. So he would have gotten separated from me anyway. It did not matter what I did, he just needed a reason to reject me and have his mate back. âWhen is the rejection ceremony going to take place?â I ask while looking down at my trembling arms. If I see his face, Iâm afraid Iâll break down completely. âTomorrow. I expect you to be present at the training ground at eight in the morning. Once the rejection is over, you can stay at the packhouse. Though Iâd prefer if you donât come close to my mate. I donât want you to cause a scene.â he replied and it hurts how he calls Nixie âmy mateâ. I rise from my seat and turn around, âDonât worry, you wonât find me anywhere near you or Nixie after the rejection is over. Thatâll be my gift to you. Happy Marriage Anniversary, Alpha Elijah.â Chapter 2 : Her, Nixie Verena It's alright. Things will get better. Elijah will change his mind, after all he loves meâ- My trembling hand freezes halfway as I reach for the plate on the dining table. Tear droplets splatter on the polished darkwood, and the sight of our signatures on the divorce agreement brings me crashing back to reality. We're divorced, and tomorrow he will reject me. Not being able to pretend anymore, I break down into sobs. My fingers curl on the edge of the table while I look at the hardwood floor with tears streaming down my eyes. He really divorced me. My relationship with Elijah hasnât been a bed of roses. When we married, he was cold and distant. But I started to witness the softer, emotional side of him that he tried to hide from the rest of the world. I made his pain my own, and tried my best to keep him happy. He was gradually warming up to me. But then Nixie returned and he pushed me away like those years of our relationship meant nothing to him. My chest squeezes painfully at the thought of it. I just canât accept that he doesn't want me anymore. But the untouched food on the table, and the red velvet cake with Happy Third Marriage Anniversary written on it is a reminder that it's true. It took me almost four hours to bake this cake, in high hopes of seeing a smile on Elijahâs face when he returns. âAre you finished with your nonsense?â Maya, my maidâs voice, draws my attention to the door. She stands there with an annoyed expression, gesturing towards the wall. âUnlike you, I actually have work to do, like cleaning up this mess.â I wipe my face, and take a step back, âYes, go ahead.â My voice sounds dry. Maya rolls her eyes, her lips curl in disapproval as she walks over and eyes the table. âSuch a headache,â she mutters while shaking her head. Despite being Luna, I am not liked in the packhouse. It's because I am an orphan who did not shift. Even an omega has a wolf, so it makes me appear way beneath in rank. So the people donât approve of me as their Queen. Someone without a wolf canât lead a pack of wolves. Thatâs what I have always been told. I have learned to live with it because that is how I have always been treated. And forcing people to like me through fear of my position goes beyond my values, so I try to make up for my weakness by putting my best efforts. But Elijah has punished anyone who has tried to misbehave with me, always taking my side when things went down. He was very protective of me. Was. I wonder if he believes now Nixie will be a better Luna than me because of having a wolf. She comes from a family of Gammas, so she has a strong wolf and anyone will choose her over me. Rip! My body jolts at the sudden sound of something being torn off, and I notice Maya ruthlessly tearing the fairy lights and red balloons off the wall behind the table. With each delicate adornment being stripped away, I feel a prick in my chest. My friends Dory and Drake helped me set up the decorations last night, and we were so proud of it. Maya does not hold back on the food either, and I flinch at the way she just dumps the cake into the dustbin. I feel like that cake, dumped into trash. My head feels dizzy at the overwhelming emotions. I need a shower. I walk out of the dining hall, and my legs feel heavy for some reason. Now that I think about it, I've been feeling quite sick since this morning. My throat itches, I feel nauseous, and I've been unusually tired lately. Maybe it's because of Elijah. Not paying any attention to my surroundings, my hand subconsciously reaches to open the door to the bedroom. But the moment the door swings back, a pleasant musky scent hits my nose. Thereâs another scent with it that makes my nose crinkle. My body freezes in place when I notice Elijah sitting on the bed. With Nixie on his lap. With brown hair that brushes her shoulders in curls and a floral print mini skirt riding up her slender, milky white thighs, Nixie looks like any manâs wet dream. Compared to her, I look basic in my plain blue dress and straight midnight blue hair. They seem to be having a moment as her arms are wrapped around his neck, while his hand is on her slim waist. Elijah notices my presence, âRena,â he takes my name with his deep, velvety voice that tugs at my heart and lets go of Nixieâs waist. Nixie gets off his lap and stands beside him, fixing her skirt. âOh my Goddess, Rena. I-I didnât know you would be coming,â her pale skin turns red as if sheâs embarrassed. Even when I donât have a wolf, I can still feel the sting of their intimacy. My heart pounds painfully in my chest. âRena, why are you here?â Elijah asks, staring at me with his cold obsidian eyes. I canât tell what he is thinking. Chapter 3 : He, with Her Verena âIâŚumâŚâ the words feel stuck in my throat. My legs feel weak. I canât believe he started to get so intimate with her after a few hours of our divorce. If heâs this affectionate with her, then it means that he has already moved on. Though maybe he did not need to move on in the first place. âRena?â He takes my name again, and I regain my composure. I need to get a hold on myself. Heâs no longer my husband, and soon heâll reject me from the mate bond. So I shouldnât be feeling anything. âDid I interrupt something?â I ask, my gaze sliding to Nixie who stares at me with her big doe green eyes. Anyone would fall for the innocence those eyes portray, but I can see the malice behind it. Elijah narrows his gaze, and places a hand over his mouth. He does that when heâs curious, and annoyed. âYou did,â he replies sharply, and I'm struck by his words. âIââ âRena, you should remember that you need to ask for the Alphaâs permission before entering his room.â My lips part in shock, and my brows lift. âWhat?â âYou heard me. Still, Iâd let this go because we arenât officially rejected and you are my mate.â His voice puts me in an icy chokehold. Just a few hours, and our relationship has completely changed. Where is the man who waited for me every single night in bed to fall asleep together? Who is he? âWow, I did not know that it was your room now, Alpha. The same room we shared for three years,â I retort, crossing my arms. My eyes flit to the bed where he was sitting with Nixie on his lap. His jaw clenches at my words. âWe are divorced now. So isnât it obvious that we wonât be sharing the same room anymore?â He tilts his head, gauging my reaction. I smirk, âSure. I mean, you wonât like me barging into your âroomâ while you spend some quality time with your mate,â I emphasize the last word and my gaze shifts to Nixie. âRena, before you say something to insult Nixie, Iâll warn you. I have been lenient with you, but I wonât this time. So choose your words wisely.â He speaks in a low, commanding voice, reminding me of whoâs in charge. His words crush my soul. It's as if I am the problem in his life. âElijah, it's alright,â Nixie moves closer to him, and slides her hand over his shoulder. âI can understand that sheâs hurt so I am fine with it.â A growl leaves my lips as I stare at her hand placement. Elijah raises a brow, and I realize what I have done. Heâs still my mate, and it's not easy for me to watch someone else touch him, even if that person is his first mate. âIâI am sorry if I made you upset, Rena,â Nixie looks at me with quivering lips, âBut you have to understand that I love him and canât stay away from him.â Tears fill her eyes, and she starts to sob. âNixie, donât cry. It's not your fault,â Elijah gets up, and wraps an arm around her. My insides scream at that sight, but I donât let a word out of my mouth. I silently watch him comfort her when I am the one in need of comfort. âRena and I have come to a mutual agreement, so it's our decision.â I scowl. It was never my decision to get separated from him. Elijah looks at me with a pointed look, âYou did not tell me why you are here.â His voice is gentle as always, but I can tell that he does not want me here. He feels that I will sabotage his relationship with Nixie. My jaw trembles, âIt's nothing. I am sorry for interrupting whatever you both were doing,â I storm out of the door while the tears trickle down my eyes. The paintings and furniture on the hallway start to look unfamiliar as I rush past them. Why? Why do I have to go through this? My head starts to throb, and I stop in my steps. I feel dizzy. The nausea grows, crawling up my chest and through my blurry vision, I see two figures on the other side of the hall. They look concerned as they walk towards me. âLuna, are you alright?â I recognize the voice. It's Dory, âYou look no wellââ I donât hear the rest of her sentence as the air shifts, and I grace the floor. Shadows dance in my vision before everything turns dark. Beep. Beep. My eyes flutter open on hearing a sound, and I find myself in a hospital bed. A dull ache throbs in my head. âSheâs awake,â I feel Doryâs warm hand on my back as I slowly get up. She helps me sit. âThank Goddess!â Drake exclaims as he stands beside her. They are twins, and work for me in the pack. I groan, feeling the same throbbing sensation. âI passed out?â âYeah. We brought you to the hospital as soon as possible. Are you okay now?â Drake asks. I nod, âYeah.â The door opens, and a woman walks in wearing a white coat and holding a clipboard. "Oh, you're awake. That's good," she says with a smile as she approaches me. My gaze falls onto the tag on her coat. Dr. Shalini, Senior Gynaecologist. âIs it an infection?â I ask. Her smile widens, âNo, Luna. I have good news for you. I hope that the Alpha throws us a party after this.â she says and my frown deepens. My gaze shifts to Drake and Dory. Drake shrugs while Dory shakes her head. âI donât understand,â I say. âCongratulations, my Luna. You are going to be a mother.â she replies. Chapter 4 : A Baby? Verena The world seems to stop as I hear what she said. I amâŚcarrying a baby now? âWhat?â I gasp. The woman nods, her eyes glinting with excitement. âYes, Luna. I ran a USG scan, and it shows the pregnancy.â Dory shrieks, âOh my Goddess! That's wonderful news.â She grins at me, and hugs Drake, who is taken aback by her sisterâs excitement. The doctor looks at my confused expression and asks, âIs everything alright?â I stare at my lap. How can I be? Drake senses my confusion and turns to the doctor, âCan we have some time alone with her? Weâll call you if we need anything. Thank you for the news, doc.â âUm, alright,â she says hesitantly, giving me one last glance before walking out of the room. Dory senses the change in mood and asks me, âWhatâs wrong, Luna?â âI think I understand why she is confused,â Drake answers, and Dory looks at him. âWe all know that Luna does not have a wolf.â Doryâs brows shoot up in realization. âOh my, thatâs right. Then, how?â She looks at me, the colors of excitement on her face completely gone. A she-wolf who did not shift canât bear another male wolfâs child, let alone that of an Alphaâs child. Our genetics act like one of a normal human, and we are not compatible with carrying a shifterâs child. So how can I having a baby? âWe should get the report checked or tell them to run another test on you. The report can be wrong,â Drake says in a calm voice. He is always calm in these situations and looks at every problem through a logical perspective. As advised by Drake, I undergo another USG scan to confirm if the report is accurate or not. Dory insists that I get some rest, so I return to the packhouse after the test is over. She promises to bring me the test report, so I anxiously wait for her in one of my spare rooms. When the second test report arrives, my eyes stay glued to the report file, my hands trembling. Test resultâpositive. Sweet tears blur my vision. I canât believe this. âIt's really true, Luna. You are with child,â Dory remarks with a huge smile plastered on her face. My hand reaches to my belly. There is a life growing inside me. When I had not shifted after my 18th birthday, I had lost all hope of conceiving. Elijah was unhappy about my barren state, and it was another reason for him to act cold towards me in the initial stages of our marriage. An Alpha needs an heir, and I was incapable of providing one. âBut how is this possible? I never shifted,â I mutter. âI have a theory in my mind,â Dory replies as she stands before me with her hands crossed. I look up from the file, and a thoughtful look darkens her eyes, âThere have been a few cases where the shifter did not transform at the right age because their wolf was still in a developmental phase.â I raise a brow, âDevelopmental phase?â She hums, âMost wolves start to develop in our bodies from the time of our birth. The average age for any healthy transformation is from eighteen to nineteen. Usually, after that time, no shifter ever transforms, meaning their wolf could not grow properly because of the lack of strength in the personâs body. But there was this one case study in the Moonlight Pack where the Alpha got his wolf at the age of twenty-six. Rumor has it that his predecessors also got their wolves late.â âSo it's in the bloodline?â I ask, rubbing my belly, âIsnât the Moonlight Pack Alpha a powerful one who has magical powers?â She nods, âThatâs what everyone says. But recently, no one has seen the Alpha around, and some say that it's just baseless rumors. If he truly had magical powers, then he would have shown them, but thereâs no incident as such. Heâs been a mystery for the last ten years.â I hum in agreement. It's hard to tell what my condition is, but I donât care. If Elijah learns about this, I am sure heâll annul the divorce. He canât reject me after knowing that I have his baby. It will put the childâs life at risk. I need to tell him. He has to change his mind after this. He canât get separated from me if he knows that I am carrying his future heir. I get up from the bed and tell Dory, âIâll show this to the Alpha.â Not wasting another second, I am rushing out of the guestroom. Thank Selene! She has blessed me with a child. She believes that Elijah and I are meant to be together. A smile curves my lips. The moment I reach his office, I knock the door twice with my knuckles while excitement bubbles through me. I hear his deep voice through the door, âCome in.â I step in, feeling a little nervous as I find him sitting on his office chair, wearing his blue-light glasses with a white rim. They frame his obsidian eyes that scrutinize me. He looks so handsome in them. But then my gaze falls on Nixie, whose arm rests on his shoulder. She is way too close to him, and frowns when she notices me. It's not hard to see the malicious look in her eyes. Once I settle things with Elijah, Iâll make sure she never gets a chance to come close to him. âWhat brings you here, Rena?â Elijah asks, shifting his gaze to his computer screen. I am about to respond when he says, âI hope it's not ânothingâ like last time. You should know that I am a busy person, and my time has value." He speaks in a frosty demeanor that reminds me of winter. âI am carrying your baby, Elijah,â I say, hoping that the news will shock him. He has always been looking forward to having an heir. Now his wish has come true. Chapter 5: Will He Be Back? Verena His gaze lifts from the display screen and darkens with disappointment, âIs this your new trick to get me back?â he retorts, and the corner of Nixieâs lips curls into a smirk. I blink in confusion. Trick? âWhyâwhy would I trick you with something like this?â His jaw clenches, and the air turns cold with his icy gaze, âYou tell me, Rena. You want me to believe that without having a wolf, you can carry the child of an Alpha?â I flinch at his words. I am not proud of my condition. But it's out of my control. âI know it's hard to believe. I did not believe it either. Thatâs why I ran two tests to confirm the report. I am really carrying a baby.â I take a step towards his desk and hand him the file. He flips through it, his eyes going over the report. Nixie leans in to also check, and her face turns pale. It makes me a little happy. This child will be the one to save our relationship and this pack. âI get it now,â he says, staring at the table in thought, and I breathe in relief. âYou went to Shadow Den after the divorce for this reason. To create a fake pregnancy report.â He adds, and suddenly it feels like I have been punched in the gut. âWhat?! What are you talking about?â I ask, my eyes wide in horror. Shadow Den is a shady place at the borders of the pack where all kinds of illegal activities take place, including creating fake documents. A dignified lady will never step into that place because it reeks of crime and rogue trafficking. âI told my men to keep an eye on you, and they reported that you went to Shadow Den. At first, I couldnât believe it and punished them for lying to me. But now it seems that they were telling me the truth.â The look Elijah gives me completely shatters my soul. It feels like the respect he had for me is broken now. I shake my head frantically, âNo! I did not go there, Elijah. Please trust me!â He scoffs, his eyes swirling with hurt. âHow can I trust you when you are doing things behind my back? You know how much I have desired a child. It pains me to think you have gone this far.â âThatâs not true. I will never do something like this, you know that,â The corner of my eyes prick. How can he believe that I will fake childbirth? âI can prove myself this time. Call the hospital and ask if I had done a test there or not.â I raise my voice, holding my ground as much as I can. Elijah dials the number on his phone. He puts it on the loudspeaker and places it on the desk for me to hear. With each ring, my heart beats with anticipation. This has to work. The clinic keeps records of their patients. âLarsen's Clinic speaking. How may I help you, Alpha?â The female receptionistâs voice comes from the receiving end. Elijah places his hands on the desk and asks, âIs there any record of my wife Verena Donovan getting a USG test done today at your clinic?â âGive me a second please, Alpha,â the receptionist answers politely. Patient records are confidential, but since it's the Alpha asking for information, the hospital has to obey his orders. I fidget, waiting for her to confirm it. Each second feels like an hour, making me grow nervous. Her voice finally comes through, âThereâs no record of her checking in our clinic today, Alpha.â My heart drops, and for a second I forget how to breathe. No, this canât be possible. I was there. They saw me. Then, why? Elijah hangs up the phone. Nixieâs eyes glint with victory as she stares at me. The walls around the office feel like they are closing in on me. Why did the clinic lie? Is someone else behind this? My gaze shifts to Nixie, who has a smug look on her face. It is strange how she has been so silent and did not try to stop me from showing the reports. He sighs and takes off his glasses. âRena, look. Your excuses are not going to work on me. This rejection is going to happen because as an Alpha, I have to be with my rightful mate.â He rises from the chair and approaches me. Standing close to me, he adds âAnd I am letting you stay here. I wonât banish you from the pack, so you donât have to use these cheap tricks.â Cheap tricks? My hand goes to my belly. The man I have spent my life with for three years did not try to believe me for once. This proves that he never trusted me in all these years, and I thought that we had a good relationshipâone that was built out of mutual love and respect. It was all in my head. âThis is the extent of my kindness, Rena,â Elijah adds, âDonât test my patience any further.â I donât need his kindness. The only thing I wanted from him was to take my side, to have faith in me. But he pushed it all away. I decide to leave silently and walk towards the door. When I grab the handle with my shaking hand, his voice stops me. âRena.â I look over my shoulder and find him staring at me. There is something in his gaze. âI hope you remember the time of the rejection ceremony tomorrow. Donât try to bail on me because then Iâll have to force you to join me at the training grounds.â My chest tightens at the lack of empathy in his voice. âI wonât,â I hold back the tears that threaten to fall by clenching the doorknob tightly. He wants to get rid of me so badly. But I am worried about my child. I can only pray to have the strength to protect my baby from his rejection. Chapter 6 : Loveâs Not Enough Verena âSo, when is the Alpha throwing us a party?â Dory asks as she walks into my room with a cheerful smile. She does not know. The only thing she knows is that I went to Elijah to tell him the good news. âYou definitely have to tell me the names you are deciding on, especially if it's a girl. I donât want our princess to have a terrible name like mine. Also Iââ âWe are going to have a rejection ceremony today,â I say with a grim expression. Dory blinks a few times, âWhat? Thatâs such a bad joke.â My lips curve in a sad smile while I sit on the armchair, âIt's not.â The girlâs smile drops, âNo, thatâs not possible.â My gaze dips to the jar sheâs holding in her hand, âDid you bring the herbs I asked you to?â Her brows pucker, âYeah, I did. But the herbs you asked for are used to protect an unborn from any strong supernatural forces. Why would you ask for something likeââ her lips stop moving as her eyes light up with realization. There are certain herbs that protect an unborn child in the womb of a mother who gets rejected from her mate. I told her to bring one of those so that no harm comes to my baby. She stays still for a few seconds, âWhat? Iâ Are you really getting rejected?â I answer her with my silence. She stands still, as if processing everything. âThe Alpha...heâs behind this, isnât he?â she grits her teeth. âI should have known it. Something felt off about you staying in this room, and looking so pale.â She clenches her fist. I slowly rise from my armchair, âDory, calm down.â âNo for this case!â she slams the jar into the bedside, and stomps out of the room. Crap! I run up to her. Sheâs going to argue with Elijah. Stepping out of the room, I get hold of her wrist, and stop her, âStop! Donât do it.â She whips her head at me, rage burning like coal in her eyes, âLuna, I respect you. But I canât accept this. How can he do this to you? Iâll go and knock some sense into him!â âNo, no, no.â I pull her back. She is acting like a dog who has gone feral, and needs to be kept on a leash. Most of the time she is calm and rational. But when it comes to the people she cares for, she becomes hot-headed and does something regretful. If she talks back to Elijah, she can be put into the cells or even banished. âCalm down. This decision is mutual,â I say, and she freezes. She turns to me with a face as if lightning has struck her. âWhat about the child? How can you get separated when the future heir of this pack is growing inside you?â She points at my belly and I place my palm on it. Despite what the clinic said, I believe that a life is growing inside me. I can feel it in my bones. But I donât want to tell Dory everything. She does not need to be involved in my problems. "It's because of the new girl who joined the pack, isnât it?â Dory asks suddenly, and I jerk my head up at her, my heart skipping a beat. I did not expect her to catch on to it so quickly. She notices my face, âYou donât need to worry about her, Luna. Iâll teach her a lesson that sheâll run out of the borders of this pack and never look back,â she says with determination. I sigh. This girl has no sense of danger. âYouâll do nothing like that. Promise me.â She frowns, âButââ âI said what I said. Donât argue with your Luna,â I will be ex-Luna soon but there is time left for the rejection ceremony. So I will use my authority to make sure Dory does not put herself in danger. Her shoulders sag, and she reluctantly nods. âBut why are you not doing anything? Will you let another girl just take everything from you?â Her words prick me. I did try, but when Elijah wants me to step out of his life, then there is nothing I can do. Even our child could not save our relationship because he does not even believe in its existence. âIt's pointless. Also, it's better to end things. Our marriage was like an agreement and since he has no use for me now, the agreement has ended.â It was a mistake. If I had known that I would be treated like this after the return of his fated mate, I would have never agreed to this marriage. Second chance mates after all areâŚsecond choice, not first. âBut LunaâŚâ She steps closer to me, her brown eyes staring at me, âYou love him, more than your own life. I know you.â Her words squeeze my chest tightly and warm tears cover my vision. She has seen how much dedicated I have been to Elijah. I blink to push my tears back, and amidst the silence of the gloomy morning my words come out like a sad symphony, âMy love is not enough.â A tear slips down my left eye. Dory's eyes glisten with pain as she wraps her arms around me in a gentle embrace. The warmth of her act stirs something inside me, and I break down into sobs. Now that she's here, I realize how much I needed someone's presence to share my sorrow. With no parents or many friends whom I can trust to open up to, given my focus on work and Elijah, her presence feels like a cool shade after hours of walking in scorching heat. "I am so sorry this is happening to you. If the Alpha can't see how much you have sacrificed for him, then he does not deserve you!" she cries, and I hug her tighter. It brings me some relief knowing that there's someone for me. "Don't worry sweetheart, it's okay. I can make it." I pat Dory on the back. "Later I'll go to Elijah's room and get my stuff back, they must not want to see me in this house, and neither do I.â Chapter 7: Shattered Expectations An hour later, I step inside Elijahâs bedroom to get all my stuff. The walls of the room make me suffocated as it reminds me of the times we have spent here. Brushing those thoughts away, I focus on my task at hand. There is no point in staying in this packhouse so Iâll pack my things and leave. The money I have saved from my stock investments will get me to stay for six months in a five-star hotel. I will use that time to find a job. Since I have always been focused on my duties as the Luna of this pack, I never got the time to pursue anything else, especially my dream to open a bakery. Now that I no longer have any duties towards the pack, I can focus on my dream and have a bakery shop of my own. Feeling a little energetic from the idea, I start to pull out all my accessories from the drawer when my eyes fall on a photo frame. Bright blue sky, palm trees and sand fill the background before which stands a couple smiling at me. The ladyâs cheeks are pink, and the shine in her eyes is unavoidable as her man has his arm wrapped around her waist. âHaha! You canât catch me!â I scream as I run across the sand, the warmth of the sun on my skin, and the cool breeze tangling my hair. Elijah has a challenging look on his face as he chases me, but thereâs a subtle smile on his handsome sun-kissed face. Before I know it, his strong arms grab me from behind, âLooks like I won,â I gasp as he gently lifts me off my feet, my heart fluttering in my chest. With a playful smile, he swings me around. Our laughter mixes and rings in the air, the world fading away as we get lost into the moment. My hand trembles as I run my palm over the picture in the photo frame. Those were some of our best moments, filled with joy and sweetness. Our relationship wasnât one of love, but he was slowly warming up to me. "Oh, looks like there is a thief in here," Nixie's voice startles me as I find her standing inside the room. "How dare you try to steal my things?" she accuses me with her arms crossed. I look at the clothes that I am holding. "These are my things." She scoffs, "No more. Whatever you had before, it all belongs to me now. Including Elijah." Her words cut deep, and she smiles in satisfaction, enjoying the effect her words have on me. Her eyes lower to my hand, zeroing in on the ring I am wearing. I look at the diamond ring. It's a very special ring to me as Elijah gifted it to me on my birthday. "This ring will protect you from everything and my heart is in it. I give it to you," He said when he slid it onto my index finger. It's a rare diamond that can't be bought with money. "Hand over that ring right now," Nixie says, her eyes beaming with greed. I take a step back, holding my hand. "No." This ring means a lot to me. Even if I am separated from Elijah, I still want to keep a part of him with me forever. âI wonât say it again. Give it to me; it's my order! Your Lunaâs order,â she shouts. âYou'll never be my Luna. And I'm not giving this to you,â I reply confidently. âHow dare you!â she grabs my wrist forcefully, and I yelp as a sharp pain shoots through my finger to my spine as she pulls the ring out of me forcefully. âGive it to me or Iâll cut your fingers off, you useless lowly beast!â she yells. Instinctively, I push her away with my other hand, and she stumbles back onto someoneâs chest. My eyes go round when I see Elijah holding her from behind. His eyes are as cold as the Arctic, freezing me in my spot. âWhat is happening here?â âE-elijah,â Nixie starts crying, and wraps her arms around his neck, âIââ she sniffs, âI was only asking her how costly the ring is and she pushed me away.â She sobs like a baby. âThatâs not true. She was trying to take the ring from me!â I protest. âSo what if she did?â he asks, his face like a carved stone with no emotions. I stare at him, trying to process what he said for a moment. âI told her that she can have the ring when she asked me about it.â My eyes widen in disbelief, unblinking as they stare at him. Time stands still. I canât believe what he is saying. âHand over the ring to her, Rena,â he demands in a frosty voice. My feet feel glued to the floor. Nixieâs lips curl in a smile as she watches me in despair. The room closes around me, suffocating me with the weight of its shattered expectations. My lips curve upwards, a smile tugging at the corners of my mouth. It's devoid of any joy and is a mask to hide the emptiness within. Why did I even hope that heâll care for me? Stupid, stupid me. I walk towards them and pull out the ring from my finger. âHere, take it,â I say while the smile remains intact. âYou can have everything else here too. I donât want it anymore.â It's exhausting to keep hoping that things will change, that heâll take me back. Those are my last words, and I walk out of the room, accepting my defeat. Nixie wins, I lose. Suddenly, I feel a hand grab my wrist from behind and hear Elijahâs voice, âRena.â I freeze. His voice is so gentle. My heart pounds in my chest, and I look past my shoulder to meet his black eyes. âThe rejection ceremony is going to start soon. Iâll wait for you at the training grounds.â Chapter 8 : The Rejection Verena I smile, while my heart breaks in pain. He is so good at crushing my heart, like it's an object. âI will be there in time.â Saying that, I pull my hand away from him, engraving his touch for the last time in my head. A while later, I look at my reflection in the mirror. Dark eye bags hang under my green eyes, like someone has sucked the soul out of me. Only half an hour left before the ceremony begins, and after that, I will be separated from Elijah completely. I have mentally prepared myself for it, but physically, I am in a mess. Nixie took all my clothes and accessories, even the ones I bought myself. I am not that interested in fashion, so most of my clothes and jewelry were gifted by Elijah. So now, I have nothing to wear except this dress that I have on. My hands tremble a little in concern. Without anything, it will be hard for me to survive. But then I remind myself that I will be a mother soon. Stress is not good for the baby. I rub my belly, âMamma promises to be strong from now on. You hang in there, pup.â I will need to dip into some of my savings to purchase new clothes and other necessities. But first, I must find a good hotel to stay in. My thoughts are interrupted by the loud sound of footsteps, and my face sours when I see Nixie walk in through the door, looking very chirpy. Now, what does she want? "Why are you here?" I ask in frustration, deciding not to turn around and act as though I am busy. Searching for hotels will be a better use of my time. I feel her close in, and she waves her hand before my face from behind. My gaze falls on the diamond ring on her finger, the ring I thought Elijah had gifted me as a sign of his love. My heart crumbles at the sight of it. "It suits me more than you, doesn't it? Elijah said that it looks better on me," she giggles, adding salt to my wound. I intentionally stay silent and focus on scrolling through a site that shows the various hotels available with their ratings and reviews. "Hello? I am talking to you!" she waves her hand again, clearly annoyed by not receiving her expected response. I refuse to give her the satisfaction of seeing me in pain, so I continue to avoid her. There's a groan from behind before she slaps my phone away, causing it to hit the hard, hardwood floor. I gasp at its state and immediately pick it up. The screen has cracked. "Now, that's a proper reaction," she says, smirking. Clenching my jaw, I face her. "Whatâs your problem, you mad woman?! I have divorced Elijah, and we are rejecting each other. That should be more than enough for you!" She sneers at me. "Don't act like you're doing me a favor. Actually, I'll do you a favor. Once you're rejected, I'll make sure you get banished after that." My face drains of all colors. Banishment? No! If I'm banished, I'll become a rogue with nowhere to live and no means to survive. That's assuming I don't get hurt by the dangerous creatures outside the borders or get captured by rogue traffickers who might sell me to some nasty, old Alpha as a slave first. I can't let my child be born in those circumstances. "Why? I'll leave this packhouse after rejection, so I won't be a threat to you anymore," I protest. She scowls. "Of course you are. I don't know what Elijah saw in you, but he seems to still care about you. He was telling me to return your clothes since he gave them to you," she rolls her eyes, "And he won't allow me to turn you into a slave for this packhouse either. So it means you're a threat to my position." I gulp, feeling a little relieved knowing that Elijah said that. But it's quickly replaced by Nixie's warning. "Be prepared to be kicked out. See you in the training grounds," she waves her hand and walks away humming a tune. My legs give out, and I collapse to the floor. My fingers curl around the bedsheet for support as I try to calm the crumbling anxiety inside me. What do I do now? I can't become a rogue. Dory walks in, her eyes falling on me. "Luna, are you okay?" she rushes up to me and helps me stand. She touches my forehead. "You're burning up. Did something happen?" I shake my head. "I'm fine. Is it time?" Her face falls, and she nods once. Taking a deep breath, I gather some courage. "Alright, let's go." Chapter 9 : Rejection I have to fight this. If Nixie wins, my pup will be in danger. I won't let that happen. We walk down the stairs and step outside. The sky is filled with gray clouds. On the large training grounds where the air usually buzzes with excitement and the energy of warriors, there's a damp, silent atmosphere among the people who came to watch the ceremony. None of them seem sad to watch me get rejected. They've never wanted me as their Luna because I'm an orphan. I take my place in the center of the ground. The people on the left clear a path for Elijah to walk through by standing in two rows, and he stops before the space created for the ceremony. Our eyes meet for a few seconds before he turns to the crowd. âI wonât waste time on explaining whatâs happening here as most of you present are already aware. But know that I wonât tolerate anyone breaking the rules. If anyone dares to say a bad word to Verena or insults her in any way, I will have your head. Rejected or not, she is still a respected member of our family and this pack. So you all are expected to treat her fairly. Is that clear?â The people nod in unison, fearing Elijahâs wrath. A part of me is glad that he is rejecting me in a respectful manner. It would have hurt a lot more if he just allowed anyone to publicly berate me, especially when I go through the rejection. Elijah walks closer to me, and looks into my eyes. I feel his breathing was a little erratic and his face didn't look quite right.. Is he drunk? "I, Elijah Donovan, Alpha of the Iron Claw Pack, reject you, Verena, as my fated mate and my Luna," he declares. I close my eyes, attempting to block out the pain threatening to consume me. But even in the darkness behind my eyelids, I feel the strength of the rejection, as it threatens to tear my body apart. The pain rattles through my bones, clogging my nostrils and leaving me breathless. Elijah extends his arm to help me, but I take a step back. I will endure this pain alone. "I, Verena, current Luna of the Iron Claw Pack, accept your rejection, Alpha Elijah," I declare. My legs wobble beneath my dress as the ache in my chest intensifies. I feel a strong convulsion in my belly, causing me to lose my balance and drop to the ground, clutching my stomach. My baby! "Rena, are you alright?" Elijah inquires, but I know better than to believe that he actually cares for me. Gradually, the pain subsides, and I feel the herbs taking action to protect my baby from the effects of the rejection. "I am fine," I manage to say, wiping my tear-soaked face. "You accepted it," he mutters under his breath. Was he not expecting it? I donât even understand him at this point. My limbs feel weak, so I remain in my place, trying to prevent myself from passing out. Just as I begin to feel like I have regained some control over my body, a strong scent hits my nose. It smells like lemons and grass, reminiscent of summer. I glance in the direction from which it's coming and spot a man walking into the crowd, looking around anxiously. Heâs as tall as Elijah, broad and well-built, with spiky light-blond hair, deep blue eyes, and a tattoo running down his left arm. His aura is powerful, like that of an Alpha. The moment his eyes land on me, he growls ferociously, his wolf showing in his eyes, "Mine!" | LEARN_MORE | https://wwwedb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=16560&u | New world publications | https://www.facebook.com/100090352943774/ | 3,782 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | wwwedb.com | DCO | https://wwwedb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=16560&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/470211616_1089749272699128_268792006170706946_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=100&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=0MC8cm6ASRMQ7kNvgFhkQQp&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AtQ23ouK47Om0vQ51H86oMr&oh=00_AYCnEFQJhX0TDbTdFa_l5dWXTrLUMkrTgxGMxrUMIE2jLA&oe=678B7B9C | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | New world publications | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,028 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664182}' |
No | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
ăăăăŻăŞăăŻăăŚçĄćă§ăčŞăżăă ăăďź | éŤćŠĺŞĺăćŤćçă¨č¨şćăăăăăŽćĽă复ăŽä˝č¤ĺłťäťăŻăĺćăŽç¸ćăŽĺäžăŽä¸čŠąăăăŚăăă ... ç é˘ă§ăä¸ćć ćăć¸ăéĄă§č¨ăŁăăăĺŞĺăăăćčĄăćĺăăă°ăçĺçăŻ15%ăă30%ăŤăŞăăă ĺŞĺăŻăă°ăăŽă˛ăăç´°ăćă§ăă ăŁă¨ćĄăăăăéăăăĺ°ăăŞéĄăŤćˇąăé°ăă澎ăăšăŚăăă ăĺ 蟊ăăăćčĄăĺăăŞăăă°ăăŠăŽăăăçăăăăăŽďźă ăĺĺš´ăă1ĺš´ăăăăă ĺŞĺăŻĺăăă ăŁă¨ĺăżăăăăăŁă¨č¨čăĺăĺşăăăăĺ 蟊ăăăŽăă¨ăŻç§ĺŻăŤăăŚăĄăăă ăă厜ćăĺżé ăăăăăŞăăŽăă éŤćŠĺŽśăŻăă§ăŤç ´çŁăăŚăăăĺŞĺăŻçśčŚŞăŽĺťç貝ă塼é˘ăăă ăă§ă粞ä¸ćŻă ăŁăă ć ćăŻčŤŚăăăăăŤč¨ăŁăăăĺŁĺ¤ăăŞăăăă§ăăçľĺŠăăŚăăă¨čăăăćŚéŁăăââă ăăçśăăăŽăă¨ăŻăéĄăăăăăčĄăăŞăă¨ăăĺŞĺăŻĺ¤ŤăŽčŠąéĄăéżăăăăăŤăćŠă ăŤăăŽĺ ´ăçŤăĄĺťăŁăă çśčŚŞăŽć˛ťçăĺ§ăžăŁăŚăăăŽ2ĺš´éă复ă§ăăä˝č¤ĺłťäťăŻä¸ĺşŚăĺ§żăčŚăăăă¨ăăŞăăŁăă彟弳ăĺăăŚéčĄäşşăŤç é˘ă¸éă°ăăćă§ăăăă ă ăă¤ăŚăŻĺ˝źăĺŞĺă大ĺăŤăăŚăăăă ăăĺćăŽç¸ćă§ăăćžćŹéçžăĺŚĺ¨ ăăçść ă§ĺ¸°ĺ˝ăăŚăăăăăšăŚăĺ¤ăăŁăă ĺŞĺăăă¤ăŚĺŚĺ¨ ăăŚăăăă¨ăăăŁăăăăćĽăćšă§ćžćŹéçžă¨ă¨ăăŤč˝ć°´ăăćăĺż ćťăŤăăăăŞăăă彟ăéçžăŤĺăăŁăŚćłłăă§ăăĺ§żăčŚăă ĺžăéçžăŻçĄäşăŤĺăŠăăçŁăă ăă§ăĺŞĺăŻćŻčŚŞăŤăŞăćŠäźă弪ăăăă 7ćĽĺžăĺłťäťăŻé˘ĺŠăćąăăăă彟弳ăŻćĺŚăăă ă ăăç ć°ăŽăă¨ăçĽăŁăäťă彟弳ăŻéăăćă§ĺ˝źăŽéťčŠąăăăăă 3ĺçŽăŽăłăźăŤă§ă¤ăŞăăă¨ă彟ăŽĺˇăă声ăčăăăŚăăăăé˘ĺŠäťĽĺ¤ăŽç¨äťśăŞăăăĺăŤäźăć°ăŻăŞăăă ĺŞĺăŻćśăăăăăçăŽčŠąăĺăĺşăăă¨ăă§ăăŞăăŁăăăăă¨éťčŠąăŽĺăăăăéçžăŽĺٰăčăăăŚăăăăĺłťäťĺăăăăă辤ăĄăăăŽĺŽćć¤ćťăăă ăăŽçŹéăăăăăŚăăćśăä¸ć°ăŤćş˘ăĺşăăăăăšăŚăçľăăăăćăćĽăăŽă ă ĺŞĺăŻăéăă声ă§ăçľăĺşăăăăŤă˝ă¤ăă¨ĺăăăăĺłťäťâŚâŚăăăé˘ĺŠăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻä¸çŹăéŠăăăăă ăŁăăăĺˇçŹăăŚč¨ăŁăăăĺŞĺăäťĺşŚăŻăŠăăŞćă使ăă¤ăăă ďźă ă厜ă§ĺž ăŁăŚăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻăéťčŠąăçŞçśĺăăăĺžăĺçśă¨ăšăăăčŚă¤ăăŚăăă ä¸ĺš´éćĺŚăçśăăŚăăĺŞĺăăăŞăäťćĽăŤĺćăăăŽă ăăďź ĺ˝źĺĽłăŤäźăăŤčĄăăă¨ăćąşăăă ăĺłťäťăăŠăăŤčĄăăŽăďźăéçžăĺăŠăăćąăăŞăăčż˝ăăăăŚăăă ăăăă彟ăŻä˝ăč¨ăăçŤăĄĺťăŁăăăăŽçŹéăéçžăŽĺŞăă襨ć ăŻăżăăżăăăĄăŤćăăăăťăŠćăăŞăŁăă ăăŽĺĽłâŚâŚăžăä˝ăäťćăăŚăăăăďź çé˘ăŽăă˘ăéăăă¨ăăĺŞĺăŻăăźăăŤăŽăă°ăŤçŤăŁăŚăăăšăźăăçăčăéŤăçˇć§ăčŚăăć´ăŁăéĄçŤăĄăŻć°ˇăŽăăăŤĺˇăăăăăŽćăçłăŤăŻĺŞĺă¸ăŽčť˝čă澎ăăă§ăăă ăăŠăăŤčĄăŁăŚăăă ďźăĺłťäťăĺˇăăĺ°ăăă ăăăăŞăă¨ăŻăă¤ăăć°ăŤăăăŽďźă ăé˘ĺŠĺąăŤăľă¤ăłăăŚăăăĺż čŚăăăăă ăăŽč¨čăŻéăéăŽăăăŤĺ˝źĺĽłăŽĺżăĺşăăă濥ăăä˝ăĺźăăăăŞăăă彟弳ăŻăŤăăłăăć¸éĄăéăăŤĺăĺşăăă ăĺżé ăăĺż čŚăăŞăăăăăľă¤ăłć¸ăżă ăă 彟弳ăć¸éĄăăăźăăŤăŽä¸ăŤç˝Žăăă¨ăăĺłťäťăŻăé˘ĺŠăă¨ăăäşćĺăăăăťăŠăžă§ăŤä¸ć忍ăŤćăăăă¨ăŻăŞăăŁăăĺŞĺăĺŻä¸čŚćąăăăŽăŻă2ĺĺăŽć °čŹćă ăŁăă ăăŠăăăŚćĽăŤĺćăăăŽăă¨ćăŁăăăçľĺąéăŽăăăăă彟ăŽéĄăĺ˛çŹă澎ăăšăă ăă¤ăŚăŞăăčŞĺăĺźčˇăăăăăăăŞăăă§ăăäťĺ˝źĺĽłăŻăă éăăŤč¨ăŁăăăćŹćĽăŞăăä˝č¤ăăăŽčłçŁăŽĺĺăčŤćąăă樊ĺŠăăăăăă§ăăç§ăŻ2ĺĺăăčŚćąăăŞăăŁăăăăă§ăăăžă ć ăăăăăŚăă¤ăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻä¸ćŠĺăŤé˛ăżăéˇă役ăĺŞĺăčŚăŁăă彟ăŻĺ˝źĺĽłăŽéĄăç´°éˇăćă§ć´ăżăĺˇăă声ă§č¨ăŁăăăäťăä˝ăŚĺźăă ďźă ăä˝č¤ăăăăăăăŽĺźăłćšăĺŤăŞăăĺ 复ă¨ĺźăłç´ăăŚăăăăăăăăăć¸éĄăŤăľă¤ăłăăŚĺ¸°ăŁăŚăăăŁăŚăăďźă 彟ăŻä¸ć忍ăăăŞéĄăăăăăăăăŻäżşăŽĺŽśă ăĺşăŚčĄăă¨č¨ă樊ĺŠăŻăĺăŤăŻăăăăăă ĺŞĺăŻçŽčăăŤĺžŽçŹăżăč¨ăŁăăă確ăăŤăăăŽć¨ŠĺŠăŻăŞăăăă§ăăĺŽĺżăăŚăä˝č¤ăăăé˘ĺŠč¨źćć¸ăĺăĺăŁăăăăăăŤĺşăŚčĄăăă ăžăă彟ăŽćăćŻăćăăĺˇăăçŽă§ĺ˝źăčŚă¤ăăăăććĽăŽć9ćăĺ¸ĺ˝šćă§ć¸éĄăćăŁăŚăăŚăă ăăăă çżćăćĽăŽĺşĺăŤăŻĺŞĺăŻĺşçşăăăă¨ăăćăç é˘ăăéťčŠąăăăăŁăŚăăăăéŤćŠăăăăçśăăăĺżčçşä˝ă辡ăăăžăăăă ăăăŁďźăăĺăăăžăďźă ç é˘ăŤĺ°çăăă¨ăćčĄăŻăžă çśăăŚăăă äťăĺŻä¸ăŽĺ¸ćăŻçśăĺĽĺşˇă§çăçśăăăă¨ă ăă ăŁăă çčˇĺ¸ŤăćčĄč˛ťç¨ăŽčŤćąć¸ăć渥ăăŚăăăçˇéĄăŻ300ä¸ĺ䝼ä¸ă ă§ăă䝼ĺćŻćăŁăĺ Ľé˘č˛ťă§ćŽéăŻăăŁăăŽ10ä¸ĺăăŠăăăŚăčśłăăŞăăŁăă äťćšăŞăăĺłťäťăŤéťčŠąăăăăă ĺˇăă声ăčăăăăăăŠăă ďźăă30ĺĺž ăŁăŚăăăă ăćĽăŞăă¨ăăăŁăŚââă ăĺŞĺăăăă§ăăăăăďźăĺłťäťăéźťă§çŹăăăăŠăăăžăĺăă¤ăăŚăăăă ăăďźă ăăăŞďź ăĺăăăŞăďźçśăĺżčçşä˝ă辡ăăăŚćčĄăĺż čŚăŞăŽďźââă ăăăă§ăćťăă ăŽăďźăĺłťäťăéŽăŁăă ăăŽč¨čăŤăĺŞĺăŻčłăçăŁăăăăăŞč¨ăćšăăäşşăăăăŽăďź ăăăăďźĺłťäťăćčĄč˛ťă300ä¸ĺ䝼ä¸ăăăăŽăă ăăć °čŹćăĺ ăŤćŻăčžźăă§ăăăŞăďźĺż ăé˘ĺŠăăăăďźă ăĺŞĺăäżşă誰ăăăĺăŽçśčŚŞăŽćťăćăă§ăăăă¨ăçč§ŁăăŚăăăăŞăéă渥ăăŽăŻăăă ăăăă§ăćçśăăçľăăŁăĺžăŤă ăă ăăă ăč¨ăă¨ăéťčŠąăŻĺăăăă ĺŞĺăŽéĄăŤăŻĺ°ćă澎ăăă§ăăăăă¤ăŚĺ˝źăŻçśăŤĺŻžăăŚćŹćăćăŁăŚăăăŻăă ăŁăăăăăăäťăŽĺ˝źăŽĺٰăŤăŻćŹć°ăŽćăăżă杲ăă§ăăă ăŞăă ďź 2ĺš´ĺăŽéŤćŠĺŽśăŽç ´çŁă¨çľăłă¤ăăŚčăăă¨ăĺśçśăŽĺşćĽäşă¨ăŻćăăŞăăŞăŁăŚăăă ăăăăăăŚăĺłťäťăčŁă§ä˝ăăäťćăăăŽă ăăăăăĺŽĺŽśăŻä¸ä˝ăŠăăăŁăŚĺ˝źăćăăăŚăăžăŁăăŽă ăăďź äťăčăčžźăä˝čŁăăŞăăçśăŽć˛ťç貝ăä˝ă¨ăăăăŽăćĺŞĺ ă ăŁăă ćčĄĺޤăŽćăéăăăăĺ çďźă ăéŤćŠăăăăçść§ăŻăŞăă¨ăćăĄăăăăžăăăă ĺŞĺăŻăăăăč¸ăćŤă§ä¸ăăăă äťčˇäşşăŤçśăäťťăăĺ¸ĺ˝šćăŤćĽăă ăăĺłťäťăŻăŠăăŤăăŞăăŁăă çŚăŚéťčŠąăăăăăăĺ¸ĺ˝šćăŤçăăăăăŠăăŤăăăŽďźă ăäşĺ厤ă ăă ăäťăăé˘ĺŠćçśăăć¸ăžăăŤćĽăŚăăăŞăďźă ĺłťäťăŻčăçŹăŁăŚč¨ăŁăăăć°ĺĺăŽĺĽç´ă¨ăĺăăŠăŁăĄă大äşă ă¨ćăďźă ăçľăăăžă§ĺž ă¤ăăâŚâŚĺłťäťăăéĄăăäťçśăŻăéăĺż čŚăŞăŽăă ăăăćťăă ăăčŹĺźäťŁăĺşăăŚăăăăăăăă ăč¨ăă¨ă彟ăŻéťčŠąăĺăŁăă ĺăłéťčŠąăăăăăăăă§ăŤéťćşăĺăăăă ĺŞĺăŻćŻă芰ăžăăăăŞćčŚăŤčĽ˛ăăăă 彟弳ăŻăăŁă¨ăăéăŤĺ ¨ăŚă夹ăŁăŚăăžăŁăă äťăĺŞĺăćăŁăŚăăĺŻä¸ăŽäžĄĺ¤ăăăăŽăŻăçľĺŠć蟪ă ăă ăŁăă 彟弳ăŻć蟪ăĺ¤ăăéŤç´ĺŽéŁžĺşăŤčśłăč¸ăżĺ Ľăăă ăă厢ć§ăčłźĺ ĽćăŽé ĺć¸ă¨č¨źćć¸ăŻăćăĄă§ăăďźă ăăŻăăăĺŞĺăŻćĽăă§ć¸éĄă塎ăĺşăăă ăăăăă¨ăăăăăžăăć蟪ăŻć¤ćťăŤĺşăĺż čŚăăăăŽă§ăććĽăžăăéŁçľĄăăăŚăăă ăăžăăăă ĺŞĺăŻĺ迍ăă声ă§č¨ăŁăăăćĽăă§ăăăă§ăăäťćĽä¸ăŤăéĄăăăžăăă ăăŻăăăĺşĺĄăć蟪ăćăĄĺťăăă¨ăăăăŽćăăăç˝ăăŚçšç´°ăŞćăć蟪ăąăźăšăćźăăăă ăăăŽć蟪ăă¨ăŚăç´ ćľăăç§ă財ăăăă éĄăä¸ăăĺŞĺăŽçŽăŤéŁăłčžźăă§ăăăŽăŻă彟弳ăăăŽä¸ă§ćăćăă§ăăäşşçŠââćžćŹéçžă ăŁă | LEARN_MORE | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&ut | 弳ăŽĺăčŞăżăăĺ°čŞŹă大çšé | https://www.facebook.com/61559954921868/ | 131 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | heplk.com | IMAGE | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/472729746_569882039286971_1805989029080292885_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=uIH0rimZgqIQ7kNvgEQfJ0X&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AvrJRBdYK0A6i1EXmiOe3UK&oh=00_AYB3hQrulKePdksvHZk1dqr2iRSdvauNIpgo7rs8OgqHaw&oe=678B6F9E | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | 弳ăŽĺăčŞăżăăĺ°čŞŹă大çšé | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,163 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664182}' |
Yes | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 | ăăăăŻăŞăăŻăăŚçĄćă§ăčŞăżăă ăăďź | éŤćŠĺŞĺăćŤćçă¨č¨şćăăăăăŽćĽă复ăŽä˝č¤ĺłťäťăŻăĺćăŽç¸ćăŽĺäžăŽä¸čŠąăăăŚăăă ... ç é˘ă§ăä¸ćć ćăć¸ăéĄă§č¨ăŁăăăĺŞĺăăăćčĄăćĺăăă°ăçĺçăŻ15%ăă30%ăŤăŞăăă ĺŞĺăŻăă°ăăŽă˛ăăç´°ăćă§ăă ăŁă¨ćĄăăăăéăăăĺ°ăăŞéĄăŤćˇąăé°ăă澎ăăšăŚăăă ăĺ 蟊ăăăćčĄăĺăăŞăăă°ăăŠăŽăăăçăăăăăŽďźă ăĺĺš´ăă1ĺš´ăăăăă ĺŞĺăŻĺăăă ăŁă¨ĺăżăăăăăŁă¨č¨čăĺăĺşăăăăĺ 蟊ăăăŽăă¨ăŻç§ĺŻăŤăăŚăĄăăă ăă厜ćăĺżé ăăăăăŞăăŽăă éŤćŠĺŽśăŻăă§ăŤç ´çŁăăŚăăăĺŞĺăŻçśčŚŞăŽĺťç貝ă塼é˘ăăă ăă§ă粞ä¸ćŻă ăŁăă ć ćăŻčŤŚăăăăăŤč¨ăŁăăăĺŁĺ¤ăăŞăăăă§ăăçľĺŠăăŚăăă¨čăăăćŚéŁăăââă ăăçśăăăŽăă¨ăŻăéĄăăăăăčĄăăŞăă¨ăăĺŞĺăŻĺ¤ŤăŽčŠąéĄăéżăăăăăŤăćŠă ăŤăăŽĺ ´ăçŤăĄĺťăŁăă çśčŚŞăŽć˛ťçăĺ§ăžăŁăŚăăăŽ2ĺš´éă复ă§ăăä˝č¤ĺłťäťăŻä¸ĺşŚăĺ§żăčŚăăăă¨ăăŞăăŁăă彟弳ăĺăăŚéčĄäşşăŤç é˘ă¸éă°ăăćă§ăăăă ă ăă¤ăŚăŻĺ˝źăĺŞĺă大ĺăŤăăŚăăăă ăăĺćăŽç¸ćă§ăăćžćŹéçžăĺŚĺ¨ ăăçść ă§ĺ¸°ĺ˝ăăŚăăăăăšăŚăĺ¤ăăŁăă ĺŞĺăăă¤ăŚĺŚĺ¨ ăăŚăăăă¨ăăăŁăăăăćĽăćšă§ćžćŹéçžă¨ă¨ăăŤč˝ć°´ăăćăĺż ćťăŤăăăăŞăăă彟ăéçžăŤĺăăŁăŚćłłăă§ăăĺ§żăčŚăă ĺžăéçžăŻçĄäşăŤĺăŠăăçŁăă ăă§ăĺŞĺăŻćŻčŚŞăŤăŞăćŠäźă弪ăăăă 7ćĽĺžăĺłťäťăŻé˘ĺŠăćąăăăă彟弳ăŻćĺŚăăă ă ăăç ć°ăŽăă¨ăçĽăŁăäťă彟弳ăŻéăăćă§ĺ˝źăŽéťčŠąăăăăă 3ĺçŽăŽăłăźăŤă§ă¤ăŞăăă¨ă彟ăŽĺˇăă声ăčăăăŚăăăăé˘ĺŠäťĽĺ¤ăŽç¨äťśăŞăăăĺăŤäźăć°ăŻăŞăăă ĺŞĺăŻćśăăăăăçăŽčŠąăĺăĺşăăă¨ăă§ăăŞăăŁăăăăă¨éťčŠąăŽĺăăăăéçžăŽĺٰăčăăăŚăăăăĺłťäťĺăăăăă辤ăĄăăăŽĺŽćć¤ćťăăă ăăŽçŹéăăăăăŚăăćśăä¸ć°ăŤćş˘ăĺşăăăăăšăŚăçľăăăăćăćĽăăŽă ă ĺŞĺăŻăéăă声ă§ăçľăĺşăăăăŤă˝ă¤ăă¨ĺăăăăĺłťäťâŚâŚăăăé˘ĺŠăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻä¸çŹăéŠăăăăă ăŁăăăĺˇçŹăăŚč¨ăŁăăăĺŞĺăäťĺşŚăŻăŠăăŞćă使ăă¤ăăă ďźă ă厜ă§ĺž ăŁăŚăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻăéťčŠąăçŞçśĺăăăĺžăĺçśă¨ăšăăăčŚă¤ăăŚăăă ä¸ĺš´éćĺŚăçśăăŚăăĺŞĺăăăŞăäťćĽăŤĺćăăăŽă ăăďź ĺ˝źĺĽłăŤäźăăŤčĄăăă¨ăćąşăăă ăĺłťäťăăŠăăŤčĄăăŽăďźăéçžăĺăŠăăćąăăŞăăčż˝ăăăăŚăăă ăăăă彟ăŻä˝ăč¨ăăçŤăĄĺťăŁăăăăŽçŹéăéçžăŽĺŞăă襨ć ăŻăżăăżăăăĄăŤćăăăăťăŠćăăŞăŁăă ăăŽĺĽłâŚâŚăžăä˝ăäťćăăŚăăăăďź çé˘ăŽăă˘ăéăăă¨ăăĺŞĺăŻăăźăăŤăŽăă°ăŤçŤăŁăŚăăăšăźăăçăčăéŤăçˇć§ăčŚăăć´ăŁăéĄçŤăĄăŻć°ˇăŽăăăŤĺˇăăăăăŽćăçłăŤăŻĺŞĺă¸ăŽčť˝čă澎ăăă§ăăă ăăŠăăŤčĄăŁăŚăăă ďźăĺłťäťăĺˇăăĺ°ăăă ăăăăŞăă¨ăŻăă¤ăăć°ăŤăăăŽďźă ăé˘ĺŠĺąăŤăľă¤ăłăăŚăăăĺż čŚăăăăă ăăŽč¨čăŻéăéăŽăăăŤĺ˝źĺĽłăŽĺżăĺşăăă濥ăăä˝ăĺźăăăăŞăăă彟弳ăŻăŤăăłăăć¸éĄăéăăŤĺăĺşăăă ăĺżé ăăĺż čŚăăŞăăăăăľă¤ăłć¸ăżă ăă 彟弳ăć¸éĄăăăźăăŤăŽä¸ăŤç˝Žăăă¨ăăĺłťäťăŻăé˘ĺŠăă¨ăăäşćĺăăăăťăŠăžă§ăŤä¸ć忍ăŤćăăăă¨ăŻăŞăăŁăăĺŞĺăĺŻä¸čŚćąăăăŽăŻă2ĺĺăŽć °čŹćă ăŁăă ăăŠăăăŚćĽăŤĺćăăăŽăă¨ćăŁăăăçľĺąéăŽăăăăă彟ăŽéĄăĺ˛çŹă澎ăăšăă ăă¤ăŚăŞăăčŞĺăĺźčˇăăăăăăăŞăăă§ăăäťĺ˝źĺĽłăŻăă éăăŤč¨ăŁăăăćŹćĽăŞăăä˝č¤ăăăŽčłçŁăŽĺĺăčŤćąăă樊ĺŠăăăăăă§ăăç§ăŻ2ĺĺăăčŚćąăăŞăăŁăăăăă§ăăăžă ć ăăăăăŚăă¤ăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻä¸ćŠĺăŤé˛ăżăéˇă役ăĺŞĺăčŚăŁăă彟ăŻĺ˝źĺĽłăŽéĄăç´°éˇăćă§ć´ăżăĺˇăă声ă§č¨ăŁăăăäťăä˝ăŚĺźăă ďźă ăä˝č¤ăăăăăăăŽĺźăłćšăĺŤăŞăăĺ 复ă¨ĺźăłç´ăăŚăăăăăăăăăć¸éĄăŤăľă¤ăłăăŚĺ¸°ăŁăŚăăăŁăŚăăďźă 彟ăŻä¸ć忍ăăăŞéĄăăăăăăăăŻäżşăŽĺŽśă ăĺşăŚčĄăă¨č¨ă樊ĺŠăŻăĺăŤăŻăăăăăă ĺŞĺăŻçŽčăăŤĺžŽçŹăżăč¨ăŁăăă確ăăŤăăăŽć¨ŠĺŠăŻăŞăăăă§ăăĺŽĺżăăŚăä˝č¤ăăăé˘ĺŠč¨źćć¸ăĺăĺăŁăăăăăăŤĺşăŚčĄăăă ăžăă彟ăŽćăćŻăćăăĺˇăăçŽă§ĺ˝źăčŚă¤ăăăăććĽăŽć9ćăĺ¸ĺ˝šćă§ć¸éĄăćăŁăŚăăŚăă ăăăă çżćăćĽăŽĺşĺăŤăŻĺŞĺăŻĺşçşăăăă¨ăăćăç é˘ăăéťčŠąăăăăŁăŚăăăăéŤćŠăăăăçśăăăĺżčçşä˝ă辡ăăăžăăăă ăăăŁďźăăĺăăăžăďźă ç é˘ăŤĺ°çăăă¨ăćčĄăŻăžă çśăăŚăăă äťăĺŻä¸ăŽĺ¸ćăŻçśăĺĽĺşˇă§çăçśăăăă¨ă ăă ăŁăă çčˇĺ¸ŤăćčĄč˛ťç¨ăŽčŤćąć¸ăć渥ăăŚăăăçˇéĄăŻ300ä¸ĺ䝼ä¸ă ă§ăă䝼ĺćŻćăŁăĺ Ľé˘č˛ťă§ćŽéăŻăăŁăăŽ10ä¸ĺăăŠăăăŚăčśłăăŞăăŁăă äťćšăŞăăĺłťäťăŤéťčŠąăăăăă ĺˇăă声ăčăăăăăăŠăă ďźăă30ĺĺž ăŁăŚăăăă ăćĽăŞăă¨ăăăŁăŚââă ăĺŞĺăăăă§ăăăăăďźăĺłťäťăéźťă§çŹăăăăŠăăăžăĺăă¤ăăŚăăăă ăăďźă ăăăŞďź ăĺăăăŞăďźçśăĺżčçşä˝ă辡ăăăŚćčĄăĺż čŚăŞăŽďźââă ăăăă§ăćťăă ăŽăďźăĺłťäťăéŽăŁăă ăăŽč¨čăŤăĺŞĺăŻčłăçăŁăăăăăŞč¨ăćšăăäşşăăăăŽăďź ăăăăďźĺłťäťăćčĄč˛ťă300ä¸ĺ䝼ä¸ăăăăŽăă ăăć °čŹćăĺ ăŤćŻăčžźăă§ăăăŞăďźĺż ăé˘ĺŠăăăăďźă ăĺŞĺăäżşă誰ăăăĺăŽçśčŚŞăŽćťăćăă§ăăăă¨ăçč§ŁăăŚăăăăŞăéă渥ăăŽăŻăăă ăăăă§ăćçśăăçľăăŁăĺžăŤă ăă ăăă ăč¨ăă¨ăéťčŠąăŻĺăăăă ĺŞĺăŽéĄăŤăŻĺ°ćă澎ăăă§ăăăăă¤ăŚĺ˝źăŻçśăŤĺŻžăăŚćŹćăćăŁăŚăăăŻăă ăŁăăăăăăäťăŽĺ˝źăŽĺٰăŤăŻćŹć°ăŽćăăżă杲ăă§ăăă ăŞăă ďź 2ĺš´ĺăŽéŤćŠĺŽśăŽç ´çŁă¨çľăłă¤ăăŚčăăă¨ăĺśçśăŽĺşćĽäşă¨ăŻćăăŞăăŞăŁăŚăăă ăăăăăăŚăĺłťäťăčŁă§ä˝ăăäťćăăăŽă ăăăăăĺŽĺŽśăŻä¸ä˝ăŠăăăŁăŚĺ˝źăćăăăŚăăžăŁăăŽă ăăďź äťăčăčžźăä˝čŁăăŞăăçśăŽć˛ťç貝ăä˝ă¨ăăăăŽăćĺŞĺ ă ăŁăă ćčĄĺޤăŽćăéăăăăĺ çďźă ăéŤćŠăăăăçść§ăŻăŞăă¨ăćăĄăăăăžăăăă ĺŞĺăŻăăăăč¸ăćŤă§ä¸ăăăă äťčˇäşşăŤçśăäťťăăĺ¸ĺ˝šćăŤćĽăă ăăĺłťäťăŻăŠăăŤăăŞăăŁăă çŚăŚéťčŠąăăăăăăĺ¸ĺ˝šćăŤçăăăăăŠăăŤăăăŽďźă ăäşĺ厤ă ăă ăäťăăé˘ĺŠćçśăăć¸ăžăăŤćĽăŚăăăŞăďźă ĺłťäťăŻčăçŹăŁăŚč¨ăŁăăăć°ĺĺăŽĺĽç´ă¨ăĺăăŠăŁăĄă大äşă ă¨ćăďźă ăçľăăăžă§ĺž ă¤ăăâŚâŚĺłťäťăăéĄăăäťçśăŻăéăĺż čŚăŞăŽăă ăăăćťăă ăăčŹĺźäťŁăĺşăăŚăăăăăăăă ăč¨ăă¨ă彟ăŻéťčŠąăĺăŁăă ĺăłéťčŠąăăăăăăăă§ăŤéťćşăĺăăăă ĺŞĺăŻćŻă芰ăžăăăăŞćčŚăŤčĽ˛ăăăă 彟弳ăŻăăŁă¨ăăéăŤĺ ¨ăŚă夹ăŁăŚăăžăŁăă äťăĺŞĺăćăŁăŚăăĺŻä¸ăŽäžĄĺ¤ăăăăŽăŻăçľĺŠć蟪ă ăă ăŁăă 彟弳ăŻć蟪ăĺ¤ăăéŤç´ĺŽéŁžĺşăŤčśłăč¸ăżĺ Ľăăă ăă厢ć§ăčłźĺ ĽćăŽé ĺć¸ă¨č¨źćć¸ăŻăćăĄă§ăăďźă ăăŻăăăĺŞĺăŻćĽăă§ć¸éĄă塎ăĺşăăă ăăăăă¨ăăăăăžăăć蟪ăŻć¤ćťăŤĺşăĺż čŚăăăăŽă§ăććĽăžăăéŁçľĄăăăŚăăă ăăžăăăă ĺŞĺăŻĺ迍ăă声ă§č¨ăŁăăăćĽăă§ăăăă§ăăäťćĽä¸ăŤăéĄăăăžăăă ăăŻăăăĺşĺĄăć蟪ăćăĄĺťăăă¨ăăăăŽćăăăç˝ăăŚçšç´°ăŞćăć蟪ăąăźăšăćźăăăă ăăăŽć蟪ăă¨ăŚăç´ ćľăăç§ă財ăăăă éĄăä¸ăăĺŞĺăŽçŽăŤéŁăłčžźăă§ăăăŽăŻă彟弳ăăăŽä¸ă§ćăćăă§ăăäşşçŠââćžćŹéçžă ăŁă | LEARN_MORE | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&ut | 弳ăŽĺăčŞăżăăĺ°čŞŹă大çšé | https://www.facebook.com/61559954921868/ | 131 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | heplk.com | VIDEO | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/470503447_3730807770515932_7034784579888290156_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=W3mKzIP47PIQ7kNvgHXnIig&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Al-BgLHW88QiakSkDEYKmPL&oh=00_AYC5uZTKMT6kFVuPstRv2odBzcBw2kLAUFFiSn1ApysGQw&oe=678B9A5A | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | 弳ăŽĺăčŞăżăăĺ°čŞŹă大çšé | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,153 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
No | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
Read next chapter | She was overjoyed when she found out she was pregnant, but she saw her husband having intimate with his first love. She left the divorce agreement in tears, hiding her pregnant belly and departing with a broken heart... ===== "Ms. Wright, congratulations! Your baby's very healthy." Jenessa Wright walked out of the hospital in a daze, clutching the pregnancy test result close to her chest. She was pregnant with Ryan's baby! Looking down, she absentmindedly caressed her still-flat belly and broke into a smile. Grinning like silly, Jenessa hurriedly took out her phone to call Ryan Haynes, her husband, excited to share the wonderful news. However, just as she was about to dial his number, her phone buzzed. It read, "Come to Imodon Hotel right now." It was a message from Ryan. Imodon Hotel? Why'd he want her to go there all of a sudden? Jenessa was puzzled, but she didn't hesitate for long. She hailed a cab and headed straight to the hotel. Since Ryan wanted to see her, she figured she might as well tell him the good news in person. With her heart pounding in anticipation, Jenessa arrived at the hotel. As soon as she stepped out of the car, she noticed the lobby was adorned with flowers and a brand-new red carpet, clearly prepared for a celebration. Jenessa paused, momentarily stunned, before remembering that today was their wedding anniversary. Could it be that Ryan had asked her to come here to surprise her? She smiled to herself, wondering idly how Ryan would react to the news of her pregnancy. Jenessa wove her way through the crowd, her plain attire blending into the festive scene unnoticed. It didn't take long for her to spot the dazzlingly handsome man, who easily stood out among the crowd. He was none other than her husband, Ryan Haynes, the father of their child. Just as a smile started to form on her lips, she spotted the woman standing next to Ryan, and her smile froze. That woman was Ryan's first love, Maisie Powell! Since when was Maisie back in town? Jenessa stood glued to her spot, paralyzed as she watched Ryan and Maisie entertain the guests like a perfect couple. Friends surrounded the two, and they seemed to be offering them their congratulations. "Maisie, you're finally home. This deserves a toast!" "Ryan, after all these years, you and Maisie have finally reunited. Doesn't that call for a celebratory drink?" Gradually, the teasing grew louder. Maisie, dressed to the nines in a s*xy red dress and exquisite makeup, chuckled graciously. "Quit teasing us, you guys. Ryan already has a wife." At the mention of Jenessa, the people around showed disdain. "Jenessa? Please! Ryan only married her to appease his grandma!" "Exactly! Ryan has always wanted to marry you. Right, Ryan?" Ryan, looking like a prince in his custom-tailored suit, radiated a cool, unique charisma. "Alright, enough already; stop teasing Maisie," he said coolly. "She can't drink; let me drink on her behalf." As soon as he said this, his friends' laughter and teasing grew even more intense. "Hey, Ryan, what the heck? You're being so protective of her, aren't you? Fine! If she can't drink, then you'll have to drink her share! And you're not allowed to leave until you've finished!" Amidst the boisterous teasing, Ryan remained cool and collected, but there was an unmistakable hint of a smile tugging at the corners of his mouth. Next to him, Maisie lowered her head and blushed shyly. This loving scene was so glaring that it pierced Jenessa's heart. She didn't know when or how, but she somehow ended up outside the hotel, only realizing it when the cold raindrops hit her face. The chilly wind and drizzling rain enveloped her, and in no time, a fierce storm broke out, soaking her to her bones. Still, she didn't move an inch and simply stared blankly at the rain. Why had Ryan called her over? Was this all just a ploy to make her witness their affection and gracefully surrender her place as his wife to his beloved Maisie? Jenessa's breathing grew heavy. Looking around in a daze, she figured there was nothing she could do but leave this wretched place. With stiff, deliberate steps, she trudged home in the rain. Standing at the doorway, she gazed at the familiar house, her thoughts drifting. Two years ago, when her family was on the brink of bankruptcy, they tried salvaging their situation by marrying her off into the Haynes family. Ryan was initially unwilling, but because his gravely ill grandma kept pressuring him, he reluctantly agreed to the arranged marriage. Now that his grandma's health had improved and Maisie was back from abroad, Jenessa thought maybe it was time for her to pack her things and leave Ryan. Jenessa didn't know how long she stood in front of the house before the sound of a car engine reached her ears. Then, Ryan's deep voice spoke beside her. "Jenessa, why are you standing here, out in the rain?" Chapter 2 I Want A Divorce In a daze, Jenessa looked up, only to meet the stern gaze of the man standing before her. Was she seeing things? What was Ryan doing here? Maisie had just returned from abroad; shouldn't he be spending time with the woman he loved? Ryan couldn't help but frown when he didn't receive a response from Jenessa. Jenessa, soaking wet from the rain, looked like a drowned rat. With her long, dark hair plastered to her pale cheeks, water dripping steadily from the ends, she seemed so helpless and pitiful. "What on earth happened to you?" Ryan questioned, his tone sounding a bit harsher than intended. Jenessa recalled how gentle and affectionate he was with Maisie at the hotel earlier, causing her heart to ache. It was painfully clear that Ryan's attitude towards the woman he loved and the one he didn't were worlds apart. Trying hard to swallow the bitter taste in her mouth, Jenessa forced a smile and softly explained, "It started raining on my way back home, and I didn't have an umbrella, so I got drenched-" While speaking, her nose suddenly itched unbearably, and she couldn't help but sneeze loudly. But instead of pitying her, Ryan only frowned deeper. "You're not a child anymore. If you get caught in the rain, the first thing you should do when you get home is dry off and change your clothes. Do I really need to spell things out for you?" The smile on Jenessa's face stiffened. "I-I'm sorry..." "Go get changed quickly, or else you'll catch a cold." Ryan seemed too impatient with her to say anything more, so he bypassed her and walked inside the house. Catch a cold? Only then did Jenessa remember that she was pregnant; she couldn't afford to get sick, lest she put the baby in harm's way. With that in mind, she hurried to her room, took a hot shower, and let the warm water chase away the chill. Wrapped in a towel, she stepped out of the steam-filled bathroom, only to find Ryan standing in her way. She gasped in surprise and instinctively clutched her towel more tightly around her chest. Ryan's sharp gaze remained fixed on her, and upon noticing her reaction, he asked indifferently, "Why should you be nervous? It's nothing I haven't already seen." Jenessa's face flushed bright red as memories of their passionate, intimate nights together flashed before her eyes. Without waiting for a response, Ryan casually held out a cold medicine pill and a glass of water. "Here, take this." Jenessa hesitantly glanced at the pill in his hand, worried that it might not be good for the baby. "Well, I think I'll be fine without it. After all, I was only in the rain for a while." Unexpectedly, Ryan refused to let her off the hook. "Have you seen yourself in the mirror? You're as pale as a ghost. We're visiting Grandma tomorrow, so you'd better not get sick, you hear me?" But Jenessa, worried about the baby, stubbornly resisted. "I just need to drink something warm, that's all. I'm fine, really." At this point, Ryan's patience wore thin. He decisively popped the pill in his mouth and drank some water from the glass. "Ryan, what're you- Agh!" Before Jenessa could get another word out, Ryan leaned closer, his tall frame looming over her, and grabbed her delicate chin. Forcing her to raise her head, he planted his lips firmly on hers. The pill and water then flowed into her mouth, and he didn't loosen his grip until he was certain that she had swallowed the pill. The sudden kiss made Jenessa dizzy, washing away all her inhibitions. Ryan's desires were stirred, and he carried her over to the bed. He pulled away from her for the briefest of moments to undo his tie, his eyes burning with an all-consuming desire for her. When Jenessa met his intense gaze, she snapped back to reality and cried out, "No!" Trembling, she pushed against his rock-hard chest. "Hmm?" Ryan stopped in his tracks, wondering if he had misheard. He tried to kiss Jenessa again, but she decisively turned her head away, avoiding his eyes. "Ryan, I..." She gulped, struggling to get the words out. "I want a divorce." Her words extinguished Ryan's desires in the blink of an eye. Annoyance flashing across his face, he coldly grabbed her chin, forcing her to look up at him, his deep eyes staring piercingly into hers. "Say that again?" Jenessa's heart skipped a beat. Still, she managed to suppress the turbulent emotions inside her and bravely met Ryan's intense gaze. "I said, I want a divorce." A flicker of unreadable emotion crossed Ryan's eyes. "Why?" Jenessa was taken aback by his question, confusion and bewilderment evident on her face. Why else? To fulfill his wish to marry his beloved Maisie, of course. "Because..." Her voice trailed off feebly, unable to utter the obvious. "Is your family in financial trouble again? This is about money?" Ryan looked down at her icily. "Jenessa, don't you know your place? If you need something, just say it. Don't play these little games with me, because I do not have the patience for this bullshit." Jenessa quietly clenched her fists and gritted her teeth. So, Ryan assumed that her request for a divorce was just one of her games, an attempt to leverage the situation for her benefit? Jenessa smiled bitterly, but her eyes showed a look of uncharacteristically fierce determination. "Don't worry. I don't want anything but a divorce. Ryan, we were going to get a divorce sooner or later, so what difference does it make?" Ryan didn't respond immediately. He just stared at her with a strange, serious look in his eyes. His silence sent Jenessa into a trance, a mix of anxiety and inexplicable flicker of hope taking root in her heart. "Or... do you not want a divorce?" Chapter 3 Look Out, World! The thought that Ryan might want to stay married made Jenessa's heart skip a beat, her chest heaving from anticipation. However, under her hopeful gaze, Ryan scoffed coldly. "Jenessa, don't kid yourself." His tone was full of mockery, each word piercing her heart like a knife. "Do you really think I'd say 'no' to a divorce?" He locked eyes with her, his gaze icy cold. "Remember this, Jenessa-you're the one who asked for a divorce. You'd better not come crawling back to me when it's all said and done." With that, he got out of bed and left, slamming the door behind him. Jenessa lay despondently on the bed, her heart heavy with disappointment. Tears rolling down her cheeks, she gently placed a hand on her belly, feeling the little life growing inside her. She had originally planned to tell Ryan the good news, but in the span of just a few hours, they were on the brink of divorce. After thinking about it a moment or two, she decided it was best to keep Ryan in the dark about her pregnancy. Even if they separated ways, she could raise the baby on her own. Then, thinking about her job as Ryan's secretary, she felt a pang of helplessness. Ryan's grandma had arranged for her to work under Ryan to nurture their relationship, and back then, it seemed like a good idea. But now, things were different, and it was high time she left that job. The following morning, as soon as Jenessa arrived at the WorldLink Group's headquarters, a few of her more gossipy colleagues surrounded her. "Jenessa, we've been waiting for you all morning! What's going on with Mr. Haynes and that Maisie girl? Are they an item now?" "News of Mr. Haynes throwing a welcome-home party for international supermodel Maisie Powell went viral overnight. He even invited all his friends. Looks like he's planning to make their relationship public soon!" "I heard that after the party, they spent the night together. Maybe she's his future wife!" Jenessa felt a pang of bitterness as she listened. After a brief hesitation, she replied despondently, "I don't know much about it." Her colleagues exchanged glances and rolled eyes. Obviously, they didn't believe her. "Come on, Jenessa! You're Mr. Haynes' secretary. You know him better than anyone. How could you not know any insider information? Just spill the beans already!" Jenessa forced a weak smile. Everyone knew that she was Ryan's secretary, but very few people knew that she was also Ryan's wife. He was even reluctant to make their relationship public. With a soft sigh, she stood her ground more firmly. "I really don't know, okay? Enough with the gossip." The colleagues wanted to press her further, but Jenessa cut them off before they could get another word out. "I said there's nothing to say, so quit pestering me. Were you all hired just to gossip? Get back to work, all of you!" Her stern expression made them uneasy, but she was right; they had to comply. "Okay, okay, we get it." As Jenessa walked away, they couldn't help but mutter and grumble among themselves. "Who does she think she is? Acting all high and mighty. Humph! She's not the only secretary here." "Yeah, when she started working here out of the blue three years ago, we all thought she had some kind of relationship with Mr. Haynes. But in the end, he didn't pay her any special attention-never took her to meetings with clients. She's his personal secretary, but what of it? Just eye candy!" "Her days here are numbered. Once Maisie marries Mr. Haynes, Jenessa will be the first one to go. After all, who would trust a pretty secretary around their man?" "Exactly!" Their laughter and unrestrained chatter filled the office, but Jenessa turned a deaf ear to it all and walked straight to her desk, immersing herself in her work. She knew how those seemingly friendly colleagues truly saw her. But she couldn't argue with them, because even she herself felt like a joke. Before she knew it, it was time to get off work, and most of the secretaries had already gone home. Just as Jenessa was packing her things, she received a call from her best friend, Brinley Lloyd. "Hey, I saw the news this morning. What the hell is going on with Ryan and that Maisie girl? Just rumors, right?" Hearing the disbelief in Brinley's voice, Jenessa sighed heavily. "It's true." Brinley gasped in shock mixed with horror. "What the hell?!" Throughout the day, Jenessa had thought things through, so she was relatively calm as she explained, "In the first place, Ryan and I only got married as part of an agreement. I always knew he had no feelings for me; he only married me because his grandma insisted. Now that the woman he loves is back in the picture, there's no reason for me to stay. It's time to let them be together." Brinley felt both incredulous and indignant. "But... What about the baby? Weren't you going to surprise him?" "Would it be a wonderful surprise to him? Or a horrifying shock?" Jenessa instinctively touched her flat belly, a bitter smile on her lips. "Anyway, what matters is I've made up my mind- I want a divorce, and I'll raise this baby on my own. There's no need for him to know." "Seriously, a divorce? Are you sure about that?" Brinley sounded very concerned. "If you don't want him to know you're pregnant, then you can't keep working at WorldLink. Your belly will get bigger and bigger." "Don't worry, I'm way ahead of you. I'll resign soon. Then, I can finally go back to doing what I truly love." The mention of her long-lost dreams brought a rare smile to Jenessa's face. "Oh, my God! Jenessa, are you going back to your old career?" Brinley was thrilled. "That's fantastic! I always believed in you! You're a genius designer! Look out, world-Sloane Todd, a legend in the fashion design world, is coming! You shouldn't have wasted your talents as Ryan's secretary all these years. He's not worth it!" "Sloane Todd..." Jenessa felt a bit dazed at the mention of that long-forgotten pseudonym. For Ryan, she had lost herself for so long. She almost forgot who she truly was. "Jenessa." A magnetic, masculine voice suddenly sounded behind her. Startled, Jenessa whirled around to find a stern-looking Ryan standing behind her. Chapter 4 A Bun In The Oven "Ry-I mean, Mr. Haynes! What are you doing here?" Jenessa was so startled that she fumbled for the right words, having been caught completely off guard. She hurriedly ended the call, her jittery gaze searching Ryan's face for any signs of anger, feeling inexplicably scared and flustered. When had Ryan arrived? How much had he overheard? "Weren't we supposed to visit Grandma at the hospital today?" Ryan asked, impatience evident in his tone. Only then did Jenessa remember that they had indeed made plans that day. Lowering her head apologetically, she murmured, "I... I'm sorry." "Hmph," Ryan grunted indifferently. As though unwilling to spare another glance at her, he turned around and walked out, saying briskly, "Let's go." It took the dazed Jenessa a second before she snapped to her senses and quickly caught up to him. On the way to the hospital, her mind was in turmoil. A complex mix of emotions plagued her heart as she anxiously wondered if Ryan had overheard her conversation with Brinley. But then she figured, if Ryan had heard that she planned to secretly raise their baby on her own, he wouldn't be so calm now. The two sat side by side in the back seat in complete silence. Naturally, Jenessa's distracted demeanor was a bit hard to ignore. Ryan couldn't stand it anymore. Brows furrowed, he turned his head slightly and demanded, "What's going on with you?" His deep voice startled Jenessa, interrupting her thoughts. "N-nothing," she stammered hastily. "Is that so?" Ryan spoke slowly, his tone carrying a hint of doubt. Jenessa's racing heart pounded in her chest. Just as she opened her mouth to defend herself, Ryan's magnetic voice suddenly sounded again, this time a lot closer to her ear. "If it really is nothing, then why are you avoiding me? Why won't you look at me, hmm?" Jenessa, frozen in place, dared not move an inch. A barely audible scoff escaped Ryan as he reached out one hand, gently grasping the back of her neck. From the corner of her eye, Jenessa saw him leaning in slowly...... ...... ==== To the public, she was the CEO's executive secretary. Behind closed doors, she was the wife he never officially acknowledged. Jenessa was elated when she learned that she was pregnant. But that joy was replaced with dread as her husband, Ryan, showered his affections on his first love. With a heavy heart, she chose to set him free and leave, only to be caught by Ryan... What happens next? Available chapters here are limited, click the button below to install the App and enjoy more exciting chapters (Automatically jump to this novel when you open the app) &3& | LEARN_MORE | https://web.weread.mobi/57632322-fb_contact-enr25_ | Hello Read | https://www.facebook.com/61550873765205/ | 1,005 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | web.weread.mobi | IMAGE | https://web.weread.mobi/57632322-fb_contact-enr25_2-c3-0727-core3.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=331118&accid=1166169688155768&rawadid=120214820499840597 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/471680239_1629199147676894_4408196957617306894_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=111&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=piuo8nj1KUcQ7kNvgHvU8wW&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AtQ23ouK47Om0vQ51H86oMr&oh=00_AYBDwDNkzg8KFe5Uz6ku2Q0MFQekKml4-kZbk8GGv6SoLA&oe=678B81AB | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Hello Read | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,162 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664182}' |
No | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 | ăăăăŻăŞăăŻăăŚçĄćă§ăčŞăżăă ăăďź | éŤćŠĺŞĺăćŤćçă¨č¨şćăăăăăŽćĽă复ăŽä˝č¤ĺłťäťăŻăĺćăŽç¸ćăŽĺäžăŽä¸čŠąăăăŚăăă ... ç é˘ă§ăä¸ćć ćăć¸ăéĄă§č¨ăŁăăăĺŞĺăăăćčĄăćĺăăă°ăçĺçăŻ15%ăă30%ăŤăŞăăă ĺŞĺăŻăă°ăăŽă˛ăăç´°ăćă§ăă ăŁă¨ćĄăăăăéăăăĺ°ăăŞéĄăŤćˇąăé°ăă澎ăăšăŚăăă ăĺ 蟊ăăăćčĄăĺăăŞăăă°ăăŠăŽăăăçăăăăăŽďźă ăĺĺš´ăă1ĺš´ăăăăă ĺŞĺăŻĺăăă ăŁă¨ĺăżăăăăăŁă¨č¨čăĺăĺşăăăăĺ 蟊ăăăŽăă¨ăŻç§ĺŻăŤăăŚăĄăăă ăă厜ćăĺżé ăăăăăŞăăŽăă éŤćŠĺŽśăŻăă§ăŤç ´çŁăăŚăăăĺŞĺăŻçśčŚŞăŽĺťç貝ă塼é˘ăăă ăă§ă粞ä¸ćŻă ăŁăă ć ćăŻčŤŚăăăăăŤč¨ăŁăăăĺŁĺ¤ăăŞăăăă§ăăçľĺŠăăŚăăă¨čăăăćŚéŁăăââă ăăçśăăăŽăă¨ăŻăéĄăăăăăčĄăăŞăă¨ăăĺŞĺăŻĺ¤ŤăŽčŠąéĄăéżăăăăăŤăćŠă ăŤăăŽĺ ´ăçŤăĄĺťăŁăă çśčŚŞăŽć˛ťçăĺ§ăžăŁăŚăăăŽ2ĺš´éă复ă§ăăä˝č¤ĺłťäťăŻä¸ĺşŚăĺ§żăčŚăăăă¨ăăŞăăŁăă彟弳ăĺăăŚéčĄäşşăŤç é˘ă¸éă°ăăćă§ăăăă ă ăă¤ăŚăŻĺ˝źăĺŞĺă大ĺăŤăăŚăăăă ăăĺćăŽç¸ćă§ăăćžćŹéçžăĺŚĺ¨ ăăçść ă§ĺ¸°ĺ˝ăăŚăăăăăšăŚăĺ¤ăăŁăă ĺŞĺăăă¤ăŚĺŚĺ¨ ăăŚăăăă¨ăăăŁăăăăćĽăćšă§ćžćŹéçžă¨ă¨ăăŤč˝ć°´ăăćăĺż ćťăŤăăăăŞăăă彟ăéçžăŤĺăăŁăŚćłłăă§ăăĺ§żăčŚăă ĺžăéçžăŻçĄäşăŤĺăŠăăçŁăă ăă§ăĺŞĺăŻćŻčŚŞăŤăŞăćŠäźă弪ăăăă 7ćĽĺžăĺłťäťăŻé˘ĺŠăćąăăăă彟弳ăŻćĺŚăăă ă ăăç ć°ăŽăă¨ăçĽăŁăäťă彟弳ăŻéăăćă§ĺ˝źăŽéťčŠąăăăăă 3ĺçŽăŽăłăźăŤă§ă¤ăŞăăă¨ă彟ăŽĺˇăă声ăčăăăŚăăăăé˘ĺŠäťĽĺ¤ăŽç¨äťśăŞăăăĺăŤäźăć°ăŻăŞăăă ĺŞĺăŻćśăăăăăçăŽčŠąăĺăĺşăăă¨ăă§ăăŞăăŁăăăăă¨éťčŠąăŽĺăăăăéçžăŽĺٰăčăăăŚăăăăĺłťäťĺăăăăă辤ăĄăăăŽĺŽćć¤ćťăăă ăăŽçŹéăăăăăŚăăćśăä¸ć°ăŤćş˘ăĺşăăăăăšăŚăçľăăăăćăćĽăăŽă ă ĺŞĺăŻăéăă声ă§ăçľăĺşăăăăŤă˝ă¤ăă¨ĺăăăăĺłťäťâŚâŚăăăé˘ĺŠăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻä¸çŹăéŠăăăăă ăŁăăăĺˇçŹăăŚč¨ăŁăăăĺŞĺăäťĺşŚăŻăŠăăŞćă使ăă¤ăăă ďźă ă厜ă§ĺž ăŁăŚăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻăéťčŠąăçŞçśĺăăăĺžăĺçśă¨ăšăăăčŚă¤ăăŚăăă ä¸ĺš´éćĺŚăçśăăŚăăĺŞĺăăăŞăäťćĽăŤĺćăăăŽă ăăďź ĺ˝źĺĽłăŤäźăăŤčĄăăă¨ăćąşăăă ăĺłťäťăăŠăăŤčĄăăŽăďźăéçžăĺăŠăăćąăăŞăăčż˝ăăăăŚăăă ăăăă彟ăŻä˝ăč¨ăăçŤăĄĺťăŁăăăăŽçŹéăéçžăŽĺŞăă襨ć ăŻăżăăżăăăĄăŤćăăăăťăŠćăăŞăŁăă ăăŽĺĽłâŚâŚăžăä˝ăäťćăăŚăăăăďź çé˘ăŽăă˘ăéăăă¨ăăĺŞĺăŻăăźăăŤăŽăă°ăŤçŤăŁăŚăăăšăźăăçăčăéŤăçˇć§ăčŚăăć´ăŁăéĄçŤăĄăŻć°ˇăŽăăăŤĺˇăăăăăŽćăçłăŤăŻĺŞĺă¸ăŽčť˝čă澎ăăă§ăăă ăăŠăăŤčĄăŁăŚăăă ďźăĺłťäťăĺˇăăĺ°ăăă ăăăăŞăă¨ăŻăă¤ăăć°ăŤăăăŽďźă ăé˘ĺŠĺąăŤăľă¤ăłăăŚăăăĺż čŚăăăăă ăăŽč¨čăŻéăéăŽăăăŤĺ˝źĺĽłăŽĺżăĺşăăă濥ăăä˝ăĺźăăăăŞăăă彟弳ăŻăŤăăłăăć¸éĄăéăăŤĺăĺşăăă ăĺżé ăăĺż čŚăăŞăăăăăľă¤ăłć¸ăżă ăă 彟弳ăć¸éĄăăăźăăŤăŽä¸ăŤç˝Žăăă¨ăăĺłťäťăŻăé˘ĺŠăă¨ăăäşćĺăăăăťăŠăžă§ăŤä¸ć忍ăŤćăăăă¨ăŻăŞăăŁăăĺŞĺăĺŻä¸čŚćąăăăŽăŻă2ĺĺăŽć °čŹćă ăŁăă ăăŠăăăŚćĽăŤĺćăăăŽăă¨ćăŁăăăçľĺąéăŽăăăăă彟ăŽéĄăĺ˛çŹă澎ăăšăă ăă¤ăŚăŞăăčŞĺăĺźčˇăăăăăăăŞăăă§ăăäťĺ˝źĺĽłăŻăă éăăŤč¨ăŁăăăćŹćĽăŞăăä˝č¤ăăăŽčłçŁăŽĺĺăčŤćąăă樊ĺŠăăăăăă§ăăç§ăŻ2ĺĺăăčŚćąăăŞăăŁăăăăă§ăăăžă ć ăăăăăŚăă¤ăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻä¸ćŠĺăŤé˛ăżăéˇă役ăĺŞĺăčŚăŁăă彟ăŻĺ˝źĺĽłăŽéĄăç´°éˇăćă§ć´ăżăĺˇăă声ă§č¨ăŁăăăäťăä˝ăŚĺźăă ďźă ăä˝č¤ăăăăăăăŽĺźăłćšăĺŤăŞăăĺ 复ă¨ĺźăłç´ăăŚăăăăăăăăăć¸éĄăŤăľă¤ăłăăŚĺ¸°ăŁăŚăăăŁăŚăăďźă 彟ăŻä¸ć忍ăăăŞéĄăăăăăăăăŻäżşăŽĺŽśă ăĺşăŚčĄăă¨č¨ă樊ĺŠăŻăĺăŤăŻăăăăăă ĺŞĺăŻçŽčăăŤĺžŽçŹăżăč¨ăŁăăă確ăăŤăăăŽć¨ŠĺŠăŻăŞăăăă§ăăĺŽĺżăăŚăä˝č¤ăăăé˘ĺŠč¨źćć¸ăĺăĺăŁăăăăăăŤĺşăŚčĄăăă ăžăă彟ăŽćăćŻăćăăĺˇăăçŽă§ĺ˝źăčŚă¤ăăăăććĽăŽć9ćăĺ¸ĺ˝šćă§ć¸éĄăćăŁăŚăăŚăă ăăăă çżćăćĽăŽĺşĺăŤăŻĺŞĺăŻĺşçşăăăă¨ăăćăç é˘ăăéťčŠąăăăăŁăŚăăăăéŤćŠăăăăçśăăăĺżčçşä˝ă辡ăăăžăăăă ăăăŁďźăăĺăăăžăďźă ç é˘ăŤĺ°çăăă¨ăćčĄăŻăžă çśăăŚăăă äťăĺŻä¸ăŽĺ¸ćăŻçśăĺĽĺşˇă§çăçśăăăă¨ă ăă ăŁăă çčˇĺ¸ŤăćčĄč˛ťç¨ăŽčŤćąć¸ăć渥ăăŚăăăçˇéĄăŻ300ä¸ĺ䝼ä¸ă ă§ăă䝼ĺćŻćăŁăĺ Ľé˘č˛ťă§ćŽéăŻăăŁăăŽ10ä¸ĺăăŠăăăŚăčśłăăŞăăŁăă äťćšăŞăăĺłťäťăŤéťčŠąăăăăă ĺˇăă声ăčăăăăăăŠăă ďźăă30ĺĺž ăŁăŚăăăă ăćĽăŞăă¨ăăăŁăŚââă ăĺŞĺăăăă§ăăăăăďźăĺłťäťăéźťă§çŹăăăăŠăăăžăĺăă¤ăăŚăăăă ăăďźă ăăăŞďź ăĺăăăŞăďźçśăĺżčçşä˝ă辡ăăăŚćčĄăĺż čŚăŞăŽďźââă ăăăă§ăćťăă ăŽăďźăĺłťäťăéŽăŁăă ăăŽč¨čăŤăĺŞĺăŻčłăçăŁăăăăăŞč¨ăćšăăäşşăăăăŽăďź ăăăăďźĺłťäťăćčĄč˛ťă300ä¸ĺ䝼ä¸ăăăăŽăă ăăć °čŹćăĺ ăŤćŻăčžźăă§ăăăŞăďźĺż ăé˘ĺŠăăăăďźă ăĺŞĺăäżşă誰ăăăĺăŽçśčŚŞăŽćťăćăă§ăăăă¨ăçč§ŁăăŚăăăăŞăéă渥ăăŽăŻăăă ăăăă§ăćçśăăçľăăŁăĺžăŤă ăă ăăă ăč¨ăă¨ăéťčŠąăŻĺăăăă ĺŞĺăŽéĄăŤăŻĺ°ćă澎ăăă§ăăăăă¤ăŚĺ˝źăŻçśăŤĺŻžăăŚćŹćăćăŁăŚăăăŻăă ăŁăăăăăăäťăŽĺ˝źăŽĺٰăŤăŻćŹć°ăŽćăăżă杲ăă§ăăă ăŞăă ďź 2ĺš´ĺăŽéŤćŠĺŽśăŽç ´çŁă¨çľăłă¤ăăŚčăăă¨ăĺśçśăŽĺşćĽäşă¨ăŻćăăŞăăŞăŁăŚăăă ăăăăăăŚăĺłťäťăčŁă§ä˝ăăäťćăăăŽă ăăăăăĺŽĺŽśăŻä¸ä˝ăŠăăăŁăŚĺ˝źăćăăăŚăăžăŁăăŽă ăăďź äťăčăčžźăä˝čŁăăŞăăçśăŽć˛ťç貝ăä˝ă¨ăăăăŽăćĺŞĺ ă ăŁăă ćčĄĺޤăŽćăéăăăăĺ çďźă ăéŤćŠăăăăçść§ăŻăŞăă¨ăćăĄăăăăžăăăă ĺŞĺăŻăăăăč¸ăćŤă§ä¸ăăăă äťčˇäşşăŤçśăäťťăăĺ¸ĺ˝šćăŤćĽăă ăăĺłťäťăŻăŠăăŤăăŞăăŁăă çŚăŚéťčŠąăăăăăăĺ¸ĺ˝šćăŤçăăăăăŠăăŤăăăŽďźă ăäşĺ厤ă ăă ăäťăăé˘ĺŠćçśăăć¸ăžăăŤćĽăŚăăăŞăďźă ĺłťäťăŻčăçŹăŁăŚč¨ăŁăăăć°ĺĺăŽĺĽç´ă¨ăĺăăŠăŁăĄă大äşă ă¨ćăďźă ăçľăăăžă§ĺž ă¤ăăâŚâŚĺłťäťăăéĄăăäťçśăŻăéăĺż čŚăŞăŽăă ăăăćťăă ăăčŹĺźäťŁăĺşăăŚăăăăăăăă ăč¨ăă¨ă彟ăŻéťčŠąăĺăŁăă ĺăłéťčŠąăăăăăăăă§ăŤéťćşăĺăăăă ĺŞĺăŻćŻă芰ăžăăăăŞćčŚăŤčĽ˛ăăăă 彟弳ăŻăăŁă¨ăăéăŤĺ ¨ăŚă夹ăŁăŚăăžăŁăă äťăĺŞĺăćăŁăŚăăĺŻä¸ăŽäžĄĺ¤ăăăăŽăŻăçľĺŠć蟪ă ăă ăŁăă 彟弳ăŻć蟪ăĺ¤ăăéŤç´ĺŽéŁžĺşăŤčśłăč¸ăżĺ Ľăăă ăă厢ć§ăčłźĺ ĽćăŽé ĺć¸ă¨č¨źćć¸ăŻăćăĄă§ăăďźă ăăŻăăăĺŞĺăŻćĽăă§ć¸éĄă塎ăĺşăăă ăăăăă¨ăăăăăžăăć蟪ăŻć¤ćťăŤĺşăĺż čŚăăăăŽă§ăććĽăžăăéŁçľĄăăăŚăăă ăăžăăăă ĺŞĺăŻĺ迍ăă声ă§č¨ăŁăăăćĽăă§ăăăă§ăăäťćĽä¸ăŤăéĄăăăžăăă ăăŻăăăĺşĺĄăć蟪ăćăĄĺťăăă¨ăăăăŽćăăăç˝ăăŚçšç´°ăŞćăć蟪ăąăźăšăćźăăăă ăăăŽć蟪ăă¨ăŚăç´ ćľăăç§ă財ăăăă éĄăä¸ăăĺŞĺăŽçŽăŤéŁăłčžźăă§ăăăŽăŻă彟弳ăăăŽä¸ă§ćăćăă§ăăäşşçŠââćžćŹéçžă ăŁă | LEARN_MORE | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&ut | 弳ăŽĺăčŞăżăăĺ°čŞŹă大çšé | https://www.facebook.com/61559954921868/ | 131 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | heplk.com | VIDEO | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/470241840_932234578693151_7015915272580763584_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=bd__DRYYCHMQ7kNvgEFnW91&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=Al-BgLHW88QiakSkDEYKmPL&oh=00_AYCUwRV8FMyL_XlftjgCMgC3kA29tUstSbU_i0FFaTZjIg&oe=678B7CFE | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | 弳ăŽĺăčŞăżăăĺ°čŞŹă大çšé | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,030 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664182}' |
No | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
ăăăăŻăŞăăŻăăŚçĄćă§ăčŞăżăă ăăďź | éŤćŠĺŞĺăćŤćçă¨č¨şćăăăăăŽćĽă复ăŽä˝č¤ĺłťäťăŻăĺćăŽç¸ćăŽĺäžăŽä¸čŠąăăăŚăăă ... ç é˘ă§ăä¸ćć ćăć¸ăéĄă§č¨ăŁăăăĺŞĺăăăćčĄăćĺăăă°ăçĺçăŻ15%ăă30%ăŤăŞăăă ĺŞĺăŻăă°ăăŽă˛ăăç´°ăćă§ăă ăŁă¨ćĄăăăăéăăăĺ°ăăŞéĄăŤćˇąăé°ăă澎ăăšăŚăăă ăĺ 蟊ăăăćčĄăĺăăŞăăă°ăăŠăŽăăăçăăăăăŽďźă ăĺĺš´ăă1ĺš´ăăăăă ĺŞĺăŻĺăăă ăŁă¨ĺăżăăăăăŁă¨č¨čăĺăĺşăăăăĺ 蟊ăăăŽăă¨ăŻç§ĺŻăŤăăŚăĄăăă ăă厜ćăĺżé ăăăăăŞăăŽăă éŤćŠĺŽśăŻăă§ăŤç ´çŁăăŚăăăĺŞĺăŻçśčŚŞăŽĺťç貝ă塼é˘ăăă ăă§ă粞ä¸ćŻă ăŁăă ć ćăŻčŤŚăăăăăŤč¨ăŁăăăĺŁĺ¤ăăŞăăăă§ăăçľĺŠăăŚăăă¨čăăăćŚéŁăăââă ăăçśăăăŽăă¨ăŻăéĄăăăăăčĄăăŞăă¨ăăĺŞĺăŻĺ¤ŤăŽčŠąéĄăéżăăăăăŤăćŠă ăŤăăŽĺ ´ăçŤăĄĺťăŁăă çśčŚŞăŽć˛ťçăĺ§ăžăŁăŚăăăŽ2ĺš´éă复ă§ăăä˝č¤ĺłťäťăŻä¸ĺşŚăĺ§żăčŚăăăă¨ăăŞăăŁăă彟弳ăĺăăŚéčĄäşşăŤç é˘ă¸éă°ăăćă§ăăăă ă ăă¤ăŚăŻĺ˝źăĺŞĺă大ĺăŤăăŚăăăă ăăĺćăŽç¸ćă§ăăćžćŹéçžăĺŚĺ¨ ăăçść ă§ĺ¸°ĺ˝ăăŚăăăăăšăŚăĺ¤ăăŁăă ĺŞĺăăă¤ăŚĺŚĺ¨ ăăŚăăăă¨ăăăŁăăăăćĽăćšă§ćžćŹéçžă¨ă¨ăăŤč˝ć°´ăăćăĺż ćťăŤăăăăŞăăă彟ăéçžăŤĺăăŁăŚćłłăă§ăăĺ§żăčŚăă ĺžăéçžăŻçĄäşăŤĺăŠăăçŁăă ăă§ăĺŞĺăŻćŻčŚŞăŤăŞăćŠäźă弪ăăăă 7ćĽĺžăĺłťäťăŻé˘ĺŠăćąăăăă彟弳ăŻćĺŚăăă ă ăăç ć°ăŽăă¨ăçĽăŁăäťă彟弳ăŻéăăćă§ĺ˝źăŽéťčŠąăăăăă 3ĺçŽăŽăłăźăŤă§ă¤ăŞăăă¨ă彟ăŽĺˇăă声ăčăăăŚăăăăé˘ĺŠäťĽĺ¤ăŽç¨äťśăŞăăăĺăŤäźăć°ăŻăŞăăă ĺŞĺăŻćśăăăăăçăŽčŠąăĺăĺşăăă¨ăă§ăăŞăăŁăăăăă¨éťčŠąăŽĺăăăăéçžăŽĺٰăčăăăŚăăăăĺłťäťĺăăăăă辤ăĄăăăŽĺŽćć¤ćťăăă ăăŽçŹéăăăăăŚăăćśăä¸ć°ăŤćş˘ăĺşăăăăăšăŚăçľăăăăćăćĽăăŽă ă ĺŞĺăŻăéăă声ă§ăçľăĺşăăăăŤă˝ă¤ăă¨ĺăăăăĺłťäťâŚâŚăăăé˘ĺŠăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻä¸çŹăéŠăăăăă ăŁăăăĺˇçŹăăŚč¨ăŁăăăĺŞĺăäťĺşŚăŻăŠăăŞćă使ăă¤ăăă ďźă ă厜ă§ĺž ăŁăŚăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻăéťčŠąăçŞçśĺăăăĺžăĺçśă¨ăšăăăčŚă¤ăăŚăăă ä¸ĺš´éćĺŚăçśăăŚăăĺŞĺăăăŞăäťćĽăŤĺćăăăŽă ăăďź ĺ˝źĺĽłăŤäźăăŤčĄăăă¨ăćąşăăă ăĺłťäťăăŠăăŤčĄăăŽăďźăéçžăĺăŠăăćąăăŞăăčż˝ăăăăŚăăă ăăăă彟ăŻä˝ăč¨ăăçŤăĄĺťăŁăăăăŽçŹéăéçžăŽĺŞăă襨ć ăŻăżăăżăăăĄăŤćăăăăťăŠćăăŞăŁăă ăăŽĺĽłâŚâŚăžăä˝ăäťćăăŚăăăăďź çé˘ăŽăă˘ăéăăă¨ăăĺŞĺăŻăăźăăŤăŽăă°ăŤçŤăŁăŚăăăšăźăăçăčăéŤăçˇć§ăčŚăăć´ăŁăéĄçŤăĄăŻć°ˇăŽăăăŤĺˇăăăăăŽćăçłăŤăŻĺŞĺă¸ăŽčť˝čă澎ăăă§ăăă ăăŠăăŤčĄăŁăŚăăă ďźăĺłťäťăĺˇăăĺ°ăăă ăăăăŞăă¨ăŻăă¤ăăć°ăŤăăăŽďźă ăé˘ĺŠĺąăŤăľă¤ăłăăŚăăăĺż čŚăăăăă ăăŽč¨čăŻéăéăŽăăăŤĺ˝źĺĽłăŽĺżăĺşăăă濥ăăä˝ăĺźăăăăŞăăă彟弳ăŻăŤăăłăăć¸éĄăéăăŤĺăĺşăăă ăĺżé ăăĺż čŚăăŞăăăăăľă¤ăłć¸ăżă ăă 彟弳ăć¸éĄăăăźăăŤăŽä¸ăŤç˝Žăăă¨ăăĺłťäťăŻăé˘ĺŠăă¨ăăäşćĺăăăăťăŠăžă§ăŤä¸ć忍ăŤćăăăă¨ăŻăŞăăŁăăĺŞĺăĺŻä¸čŚćąăăăŽăŻă2ĺĺăŽć °čŹćă ăŁăă ăăŠăăăŚćĽăŤĺćăăăŽăă¨ćăŁăăăçľĺąéăŽăăăăă彟ăŽéĄăĺ˛çŹă澎ăăšăă ăă¤ăŚăŞăăčŞĺăĺźčˇăăăăăăăŞăăă§ăăäťĺ˝źĺĽłăŻăă éăăŤč¨ăŁăăăćŹćĽăŞăăä˝č¤ăăăŽčłçŁăŽĺĺăčŤćąăă樊ĺŠăăăăăă§ăăç§ăŻ2ĺĺăăčŚćąăăŞăăŁăăăăă§ăăăžă ć ăăăăăŚăă¤ăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻä¸ćŠĺăŤé˛ăżăéˇă役ăĺŞĺăčŚăŁăă彟ăŻĺ˝źĺĽłăŽéĄăç´°éˇăćă§ć´ăżăĺˇăă声ă§č¨ăŁăăăäťăä˝ăŚĺźăă ďźă ăä˝č¤ăăăăăăăŽĺźăłćšăĺŤăŞăăĺ 复ă¨ĺźăłç´ăăŚăăăăăăăăăć¸éĄăŤăľă¤ăłăăŚĺ¸°ăŁăŚăăăŁăŚăăďźă 彟ăŻä¸ć忍ăăăŞéĄăăăăăăăăŻäżşăŽĺŽśă ăĺşăŚčĄăă¨č¨ă樊ĺŠăŻăĺăŤăŻăăăăăă ĺŞĺăŻçŽčăăŤĺžŽçŹăżăč¨ăŁăăă確ăăŤăăăŽć¨ŠĺŠăŻăŞăăăă§ăăĺŽĺżăăŚăä˝č¤ăăăé˘ĺŠč¨źćć¸ăĺăĺăŁăăăăăăŤĺşăŚčĄăăă ăžăă彟ăŽćăćŻăćăăĺˇăăçŽă§ĺ˝źăčŚă¤ăăăăććĽăŽć9ćăĺ¸ĺ˝šćă§ć¸éĄăćăŁăŚăăŚăă ăăăă çżćăćĽăŽĺşĺăŤăŻĺŞĺăŻĺşçşăăăă¨ăăćăç é˘ăăéťčŠąăăăăŁăŚăăăăéŤćŠăăăăçśăăăĺżčçşä˝ă辡ăăăžăăăă ăăăŁďźăăĺăăăžăďźă ç é˘ăŤĺ°çăăă¨ăćčĄăŻăžă çśăăŚăăă äťăĺŻä¸ăŽĺ¸ćăŻçśăĺĽĺşˇă§çăçśăăăă¨ă ăă ăŁăă çčˇĺ¸ŤăćčĄč˛ťç¨ăŽčŤćąć¸ăć渥ăăŚăăăçˇéĄăŻ300ä¸ĺ䝼ä¸ă ă§ăă䝼ĺćŻćăŁăĺ Ľé˘č˛ťă§ćŽéăŻăăŁăăŽ10ä¸ĺăăŠăăăŚăčśłăăŞăăŁăă äťćšăŞăăĺłťäťăŤéťčŠąăăăăă ĺˇăă声ăčăăăăăăŠăă ďźăă30ĺĺž ăŁăŚăăăă ăćĽăŞăă¨ăăăŁăŚââă ăĺŞĺăăăă§ăăăăăďźăĺłťäťăéźťă§çŹăăăăŠăăăžăĺăă¤ăăŚăăăă ăăďźă ăăăŞďź ăĺăăăŞăďźçśăĺżčçşä˝ă辡ăăăŚćčĄăĺż čŚăŞăŽďźââă ăăăă§ăćťăă ăŽăďźăĺłťäťăéŽăŁăă ăăŽč¨čăŤăĺŞĺăŻčłăçăŁăăăăăŞč¨ăćšăăäşşăăăăŽăďź ăăăăďźĺłťäťăćčĄč˛ťă300ä¸ĺ䝼ä¸ăăăăŽăă ăăć °čŹćăĺ ăŤćŻăčžźăă§ăăăŞăďźĺż ăé˘ĺŠăăăăďźă ăĺŞĺăäżşă誰ăăăĺăŽçśčŚŞăŽćťăćăă§ăăăă¨ăçč§ŁăăŚăăăăŞăéă渥ăăŽăŻăăă ăăăă§ăćçśăăçľăăŁăĺžăŤă ăă ăăă ăč¨ăă¨ăéťčŠąăŻĺăăăă ĺŞĺăŽéĄăŤăŻĺ°ćă澎ăăă§ăăăăă¤ăŚĺ˝źăŻçśăŤĺŻžăăŚćŹćăćăŁăŚăăăŻăă ăŁăăăăăăäťăŽĺ˝źăŽĺٰăŤăŻćŹć°ăŽćăăżă杲ăă§ăăă ăŞăă ďź 2ĺš´ĺăŽéŤćŠĺŽśăŽç ´çŁă¨çľăłă¤ăăŚčăăă¨ăĺśçśăŽĺşćĽäşă¨ăŻćăăŞăăŞăŁăŚăăă ăăăăăăŚăĺłťäťăčŁă§ä˝ăăäťćăăăŽă ăăăăăĺŽĺŽśăŻä¸ä˝ăŠăăăŁăŚĺ˝źăćăăăŚăăžăŁăăŽă ăăďź äťăčăčžźăä˝čŁăăŞăăçśăŽć˛ťç貝ăä˝ă¨ăăăăŽăćĺŞĺ ă ăŁăă ćčĄĺޤăŽćăéăăăăĺ çďźă ăéŤćŠăăăăçść§ăŻăŞăă¨ăćăĄăăăăžăăăă ĺŞĺăŻăăăăč¸ăćŤă§ä¸ăăăă äťčˇäşşăŤçśăäťťăăĺ¸ĺ˝šćăŤćĽăă ăăĺłťäťăŻăŠăăŤăăŞăăŁăă çŚăŚéťčŠąăăăăăăĺ¸ĺ˝šćăŤçăăăăăŠăăŤăăăŽďźă ăäşĺ厤ă ăă ăäťăăé˘ĺŠćçśăăć¸ăžăăŤćĽăŚăăăŞăďźă ĺłťäťăŻčăçŹăŁăŚč¨ăŁăăăć°ĺĺăŽĺĽç´ă¨ăĺăăŠăŁăĄă大äşă ă¨ćăďźă ăçľăăăžă§ĺž ă¤ăăâŚâŚĺłťäťăăéĄăăäťçśăŻăéăĺż čŚăŞăŽăă ăăăćťăă ăăčŹĺźäťŁăĺşăăŚăăăăăăăă ăč¨ăă¨ă彟ăŻéťčŠąăĺăŁăă ĺăłéťčŠąăăăăăăăă§ăŤéťćşăĺăăăă ĺŞĺăŻćŻă芰ăžăăăăŞćčŚăŤčĽ˛ăăăă 彟弳ăŻăăŁă¨ăăéăŤĺ ¨ăŚă夹ăŁăŚăăžăŁăă äťăĺŞĺăćăŁăŚăăĺŻä¸ăŽäžĄĺ¤ăăăăŽăŻăçľĺŠć蟪ă ăă ăŁăă 彟弳ăŻć蟪ăĺ¤ăăéŤç´ĺŽéŁžĺşăŤčśłăč¸ăżĺ Ľăăă ăă厢ć§ăčłźĺ ĽćăŽé ĺć¸ă¨č¨źćć¸ăŻăćăĄă§ăăďźă ăăŻăăăĺŞĺăŻćĽăă§ć¸éĄă塎ăĺşăăă ăăăăă¨ăăăăăžăăć蟪ăŻć¤ćťăŤĺşăĺż čŚăăăăŽă§ăććĽăžăăéŁçľĄăăăŚăăă ăăžăăăă ĺŞĺăŻĺ迍ăă声ă§č¨ăŁăăăćĽăă§ăăăă§ăăäťćĽä¸ăŤăéĄăăăžăăă ăăŻăăăĺşĺĄăć蟪ăćăĄĺťăăă¨ăăăăŽćăăăç˝ăăŚçšç´°ăŞćăć蟪ăąăźăšăćźăăăă ăăăŽć蟪ăă¨ăŚăç´ ćľăăç§ă財ăăăă éĄăä¸ăăĺŞĺăŽçŽăŤéŁăłčžźăă§ăăăŽăŻă彟弳ăăăŽä¸ă§ćăćăă§ăăäşşçŠââćžćŹéçžă ăŁă | LEARN_MORE | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&ut | 弳ăŽĺăčŞăżăăĺ°čŞŹă大çšé | https://www.facebook.com/61559954921868/ | 131 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | heplk.com | IMAGE | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/472977762_1181836630169250_3719416673554728959_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=108&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=SD6UA96CwLEQ7kNvgEztzvQ&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AvrJRBdYK0A6i1EXmiOe3UK&oh=00_AYAIekc2lVm5B9B_BuhYwFsJOTAzHjpUYVFgWEupAeKW7w&oe=678B8C82 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | 弳ăŽĺăčŞăżăăĺ°čŞŹă大çšé | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,035 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664182}' |
No | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 | ăăăăŻăŞăăŻăăŚçĄćă§ăčŞăżăă ăăďź | éŤćŠĺŞĺăćŤćçă¨č¨şćăăăăăŽćĽă复ăŽä˝č¤ĺłťäťăŻăĺćăŽç¸ćăŽĺäžăŽä¸čŠąăăăŚăăă ... ç é˘ă§ăä¸ćć ćăć¸ăéĄă§č¨ăŁăăăĺŞĺăăăćčĄăćĺăăă°ăçĺçăŻ15%ăă30%ăŤăŞăăă ĺŞĺăŻăă°ăăŽă˛ăăç´°ăćă§ăă ăŁă¨ćĄăăăăéăăăĺ°ăăŞéĄăŤćˇąăé°ăă澎ăăšăŚăăă ăĺ 蟊ăăăćčĄăĺăăŞăăă°ăăŠăŽăăăçăăăăăŽďźă ăĺĺš´ăă1ĺš´ăăăăă ĺŞĺăŻĺăăă ăŁă¨ĺăżăăăăăŁă¨č¨čăĺăĺşăăăăĺ 蟊ăăăŽăă¨ăŻç§ĺŻăŤăăŚăĄăăă ăă厜ćăĺżé ăăăăăŞăăŽăă éŤćŠĺŽśăŻăă§ăŤç ´çŁăăŚăăăĺŞĺăŻçśčŚŞăŽĺťç貝ă塼é˘ăăă ăă§ă粞ä¸ćŻă ăŁăă ć ćăŻčŤŚăăăăăŤč¨ăŁăăăĺŁĺ¤ăăŞăăăă§ăăçľĺŠăăŚăăă¨čăăăćŚéŁăăââă ăăçśăăăŽăă¨ăŻăéĄăăăăăčĄăăŞăă¨ăăĺŞĺăŻĺ¤ŤăŽčŠąéĄăéżăăăăăŤăćŠă ăŤăăŽĺ ´ăçŤăĄĺťăŁăă çśčŚŞăŽć˛ťçăĺ§ăžăŁăŚăăăŽ2ĺš´éă复ă§ăăä˝č¤ĺłťäťăŻä¸ĺşŚăĺ§żăčŚăăăă¨ăăŞăăŁăă彟弳ăĺăăŚéčĄäşşăŤç é˘ă¸éă°ăăćă§ăăăă ă ăă¤ăŚăŻĺ˝źăĺŞĺă大ĺăŤăăŚăăăă ăăĺćăŽç¸ćă§ăăćžćŹéçžăĺŚĺ¨ ăăçść ă§ĺ¸°ĺ˝ăăŚăăăăăšăŚăĺ¤ăăŁăă ĺŞĺăăă¤ăŚĺŚĺ¨ ăăŚăăăă¨ăăăŁăăăăćĽăćšă§ćžćŹéçžă¨ă¨ăăŤč˝ć°´ăăćăĺż ćťăŤăăăăŞăăă彟ăéçžăŤĺăăŁăŚćłłăă§ăăĺ§żăčŚăă ĺžăéçžăŻçĄäşăŤĺăŠăăçŁăă ăă§ăĺŞĺăŻćŻčŚŞăŤăŞăćŠäźă弪ăăăă 7ćĽĺžăĺłťäťăŻé˘ĺŠăćąăăăă彟弳ăŻćĺŚăăă ă ăăç ć°ăŽăă¨ăçĽăŁăäťă彟弳ăŻéăăćă§ĺ˝źăŽéťčŠąăăăăă 3ĺçŽăŽăłăźăŤă§ă¤ăŞăăă¨ă彟ăŽĺˇăă声ăčăăăŚăăăăé˘ĺŠäťĽĺ¤ăŽç¨äťśăŞăăăĺăŤäźăć°ăŻăŞăăă ĺŞĺăŻćśăăăăăçăŽčŠąăĺăĺşăăă¨ăă§ăăŞăăŁăăăăă¨éťčŠąăŽĺăăăăéçžăŽĺٰăčăăăŚăăăăĺłťäťĺăăăăă辤ăĄăăăŽĺŽćć¤ćťăăă ăăŽçŹéăăăăăŚăăćśăä¸ć°ăŤćş˘ăĺşăăăăăšăŚăçľăăăăćăćĽăăŽă ă ĺŞĺăŻăéăă声ă§ăçľăĺşăăăăŤă˝ă¤ăă¨ĺăăăăĺłťäťâŚâŚăăăé˘ĺŠăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻä¸çŹăéŠăăăăă ăŁăăăĺˇçŹăăŚč¨ăŁăăăĺŞĺăäťĺşŚăŻăŠăăŞćă使ăă¤ăăă ďźă ă厜ă§ĺž ăŁăŚăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻăéťčŠąăçŞçśĺăăăĺžăĺçśă¨ăšăăăčŚă¤ăăŚăăă ä¸ĺš´éćĺŚăçśăăŚăăĺŞĺăăăŞăäťćĽăŤĺćăăăŽă ăăďź ĺ˝źĺĽłăŤäźăăŤčĄăăă¨ăćąşăăă ăĺłťäťăăŠăăŤčĄăăŽăďźăéçžăĺăŠăăćąăăŞăăčż˝ăăăăŚăăă ăăăă彟ăŻä˝ăč¨ăăçŤăĄĺťăŁăăăăŽçŹéăéçžăŽĺŞăă襨ć ăŻăżăăżăăăĄăŤćăăăăťăŠćăăŞăŁăă ăăŽĺĽłâŚâŚăžăä˝ăäťćăăŚăăăăďź çé˘ăŽăă˘ăéăăă¨ăăĺŞĺăŻăăźăăŤăŽăă°ăŤçŤăŁăŚăăăšăźăăçăčăéŤăçˇć§ăčŚăăć´ăŁăéĄçŤăĄăŻć°ˇăŽăăăŤĺˇăăăăăŽćăçłăŤăŻĺŞĺă¸ăŽčť˝čă澎ăăă§ăăă ăăŠăăŤčĄăŁăŚăăă ďźăĺłťäťăĺˇăăĺ°ăăă ăăăăŞăă¨ăŻăă¤ăăć°ăŤăăăŽďźă ăé˘ĺŠĺąăŤăľă¤ăłăăŚăăăĺż čŚăăăăă ăăŽč¨čăŻéăéăŽăăăŤĺ˝źĺĽłăŽĺżăĺşăăă濥ăăä˝ăĺźăăăăŞăăă彟弳ăŻăŤăăłăăć¸éĄăéăăŤĺăĺşăăă ăĺżé ăăĺż čŚăăŞăăăăăľă¤ăłć¸ăżă ăă 彟弳ăć¸éĄăăăźăăŤăŽä¸ăŤç˝Žăăă¨ăăĺłťäťăŻăé˘ĺŠăă¨ăăäşćĺăăăăťăŠăžă§ăŤä¸ć忍ăŤćăăăă¨ăŻăŞăăŁăăĺŞĺăĺŻä¸čŚćąăăăŽăŻă2ĺĺăŽć °čŹćă ăŁăă ăăŠăăăŚćĽăŤĺćăăăŽăă¨ćăŁăăăçľĺąéăŽăăăăă彟ăŽéĄăĺ˛çŹă澎ăăšăă ăă¤ăŚăŞăăčŞĺăĺźčˇăăăăăăăŞăăă§ăăäťĺ˝źĺĽłăŻăă éăăŤč¨ăŁăăăćŹćĽăŞăăä˝č¤ăăăŽčłçŁăŽĺĺăčŤćąăă樊ĺŠăăăăăă§ăăç§ăŻ2ĺĺăăčŚćąăăŞăăŁăăăăă§ăăăžă ć ăăăăăŚăă¤ăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻä¸ćŠĺăŤé˛ăżăéˇă役ăĺŞĺăčŚăŁăă彟ăŻĺ˝źĺĽłăŽéĄăç´°éˇăćă§ć´ăżăĺˇăă声ă§č¨ăŁăăăäťăä˝ăŚĺźăă ďźă ăä˝č¤ăăăăăăăŽĺźăłćšăĺŤăŞăăĺ 复ă¨ĺźăłç´ăăŚăăăăăăăăăć¸éĄăŤăľă¤ăłăăŚĺ¸°ăŁăŚăăăŁăŚăăďźă 彟ăŻä¸ć忍ăăăŞéĄăăăăăăăăŻäżşăŽĺŽśă ăĺşăŚčĄăă¨č¨ă樊ĺŠăŻăĺăŤăŻăăăăăă ĺŞĺăŻçŽčăăŤĺžŽçŹăżăč¨ăŁăăă確ăăŤăăăŽć¨ŠĺŠăŻăŞăăăă§ăăĺŽĺżăăŚăä˝č¤ăăăé˘ĺŠč¨źćć¸ăĺăĺăŁăăăăăăŤĺşăŚčĄăăă ăžăă彟ăŽćăćŻăćăăĺˇăăçŽă§ĺ˝źăčŚă¤ăăăăććĽăŽć9ćăĺ¸ĺ˝šćă§ć¸éĄăćăŁăŚăăŚăă ăăăă çżćăćĽăŽĺşĺăŤăŻĺŞĺăŻĺşçşăăăă¨ăăćăç é˘ăăéťčŠąăăăăŁăŚăăăăéŤćŠăăăăçśăăăĺżčçşä˝ă辡ăăăžăăăă ăăăŁďźăăĺăăăžăďźă ç é˘ăŤĺ°çăăă¨ăćčĄăŻăžă çśăăŚăăă äťăĺŻä¸ăŽĺ¸ćăŻçśăĺĽĺşˇă§çăçśăăăă¨ă ăă ăŁăă çčˇĺ¸ŤăćčĄč˛ťç¨ăŽčŤćąć¸ăć渥ăăŚăăăçˇéĄăŻ300ä¸ĺ䝼ä¸ă ă§ăă䝼ĺćŻćăŁăĺ Ľé˘č˛ťă§ćŽéăŻăăŁăăŽ10ä¸ĺăăŠăăăŚăčśłăăŞăăŁăă äťćšăŞăăĺłťäťăŤéťčŠąăăăăă ĺˇăă声ăčăăăăăăŠăă ďźăă30ĺĺž ăŁăŚăăăă ăćĽăŞăă¨ăăăŁăŚââă ăĺŞĺăăăă§ăăăăăďźăĺłťäťăéźťă§çŹăăăăŠăăăžăĺăă¤ăăŚăăăă ăăďźă ăăăŞďź ăĺăăăŞăďźçśăĺżčçşä˝ă辡ăăăŚćčĄăĺż čŚăŞăŽďźââă ăăăă§ăćťăă ăŽăďźăĺłťäťăéŽăŁăă ăăŽč¨čăŤăĺŞĺăŻčłăçăŁăăăăăŞč¨ăćšăăäşşăăăăŽăďź ăăăăďźĺłťäťăćčĄč˛ťă300ä¸ĺ䝼ä¸ăăăăŽăă ăăć °čŹćăĺ ăŤćŻăčžźăă§ăăăŞăďźĺż ăé˘ĺŠăăăăďźă ăĺŞĺăäżşă誰ăăăĺăŽçśčŚŞăŽćťăćăă§ăăăă¨ăçč§ŁăăŚăăăăŞăéă渥ăăŽăŻăăă ăăăă§ăćçśăăçľăăŁăĺžăŤă ăă ăăă ăč¨ăă¨ăéťčŠąăŻĺăăăă ĺŞĺăŽéĄăŤăŻĺ°ćă澎ăăă§ăăăăă¤ăŚĺ˝źăŻçśăŤĺŻžăăŚćŹćăćăŁăŚăăăŻăă ăŁăăăăăăäťăŽĺ˝źăŽĺٰăŤăŻćŹć°ăŽćăăżă杲ăă§ăăă ăŞăă ďź 2ĺš´ĺăŽéŤćŠĺŽśăŽç ´çŁă¨çľăłă¤ăăŚčăăă¨ăĺśçśăŽĺşćĽäşă¨ăŻćăăŞăăŞăŁăŚăăă ăăăăăăŚăĺłťäťăčŁă§ä˝ăăäťćăăăŽă ăăăăăĺŽĺŽśăŻä¸ä˝ăŠăăăŁăŚĺ˝źăćăăăŚăăžăŁăăŽă ăăďź äťăčăčžźăä˝čŁăăŞăăçśăŽć˛ťç貝ăä˝ă¨ăăăăŽăćĺŞĺ ă ăŁăă ćčĄĺޤăŽćăéăăăăĺ çďźă ăéŤćŠăăăăçść§ăŻăŞăă¨ăćăĄăăăăžăăăă ĺŞĺăŻăăăăč¸ăćŤă§ä¸ăăăă äťčˇäşşăŤçśăäťťăăĺ¸ĺ˝šćăŤćĽăă ăăĺłťäťăŻăŠăăŤăăŞăăŁăă çŚăŚéťčŠąăăăăăăĺ¸ĺ˝šćăŤçăăăăăŠăăŤăăăŽďźă ăäşĺ厤ă ăă ăäťăăé˘ĺŠćçśăăć¸ăžăăŤćĽăŚăăăŞăďźă ĺłťäťăŻčăçŹăŁăŚč¨ăŁăăăć°ĺĺăŽĺĽç´ă¨ăĺăăŠăŁăĄă大äşă ă¨ćăďźă ăçľăăăžă§ĺž ă¤ăăâŚâŚĺłťäťăăéĄăăäťçśăŻăéăĺż čŚăŞăŽăă ăăăćťăă ăăčŹĺźäťŁăĺşăăŚăăăăăăăă ăč¨ăă¨ă彟ăŻéťčŠąăĺăŁăă ĺăłéťčŠąăăăăăăăă§ăŤéťćşăĺăăăă ĺŞĺăŻćŻă芰ăžăăăăŞćčŚăŤčĽ˛ăăăă 彟弳ăŻăăŁă¨ăăéăŤĺ ¨ăŚă夹ăŁăŚăăžăŁăă äťăĺŞĺăćăŁăŚăăĺŻä¸ăŽäžĄĺ¤ăăăăŽăŻăçľĺŠć蟪ă ăă ăŁăă 彟弳ăŻć蟪ăĺ¤ăăéŤç´ĺŽéŁžĺşăŤčśłăč¸ăżĺ Ľăăă ăă厢ć§ăčłźĺ ĽćăŽé ĺć¸ă¨č¨źćć¸ăŻăćăĄă§ăăďźă ăăŻăăăĺŞĺăŻćĽăă§ć¸éĄă塎ăĺşăăă ăăăăă¨ăăăăăžăăć蟪ăŻć¤ćťăŤĺşăĺż čŚăăăăŽă§ăććĽăžăăéŁçľĄăăăŚăăă ăăžăăăă ĺŞĺăŻĺ迍ăă声ă§č¨ăŁăăăćĽăă§ăăăă§ăăäťćĽä¸ăŤăéĄăăăžăăă ăăŻăăăĺşĺĄăć蟪ăćăĄĺťăăă¨ăăăăŽćăăăç˝ăăŚçšç´°ăŞćăć蟪ăąăźăšăćźăăăă ăăăŽć蟪ăă¨ăŚăç´ ćľăăç§ă財ăăăă éĄăä¸ăăĺŞĺăŽçŽăŤéŁăłčžźăă§ăăăŽăŻă彟弳ăăăŽä¸ă§ćăćăă§ăăäşşçŠââćžćŹéçžă ăŁăă | LEARN_MORE | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&ut | 弳ăŽĺăčŞăżăăĺ°čŞŹă大çšé | https://www.facebook.com/61559954921868/ | 131 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | heplk.com | VIDEO | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/472720556_1710835186143101_2613099734787316724_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=Vu5ORL62NicQ7kNvgGrFiwA&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AvrJRBdYK0A6i1EXmiOe3UK&oh=00_AYC13bLd9WOjlOy2iy0L60gQrMKrFYEv7bMR0PUkU7_PLg&oe=678B71CB | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | 弳ăŽĺăčŞăżăăĺ°čŞŹă大çšé | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,041 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664182}' |
Yes | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
ăăăăŻăŞăăŻăăŚçĄćă§ăčŞăżăă ăăďź | éŤćŠĺŞĺăćŤćçă¨č¨şćăăăăăŽćĽă复ăŽä˝č¤ĺłťäťăŻăĺćăŽç¸ćăŽĺäžăŽä¸čŠąăăăŚăăă ... ç é˘ă§ăä¸ćć ćăć¸ăéĄă§č¨ăŁăăăĺŞĺăăăćčĄăćĺăăă°ăçĺçăŻ15%ăă30%ăŤăŞăăă ĺŞĺăŻăă°ăăŽă˛ăăç´°ăćă§ăă ăŁă¨ćĄăăăăéăăăĺ°ăăŞéĄăŤćˇąăé°ăă澎ăăšăŚăăă ăĺ 蟊ăăăćčĄăĺăăŞăăă°ăăŠăŽăăăçăăăăăŽďźă ăĺĺš´ăă1ĺš´ăăăăă ĺŞĺăŻĺăăă ăŁă¨ĺăżăăăăăŁă¨č¨čăĺăĺşăăăăĺ 蟊ăăăŽăă¨ăŻç§ĺŻăŤăăŚăĄăăă ăă厜ćăĺżé ăăăăăŞăăŽăă éŤćŠĺŽśăŻăă§ăŤç ´çŁăăŚăăăĺŞĺăŻçśčŚŞăŽĺťç貝ă塼é˘ăăă ăă§ă粞ä¸ćŻă ăŁăă ć ćăŻčŤŚăăăăăŤč¨ăŁăăăĺŁĺ¤ăăŞăăăă§ăăçľĺŠăăŚăăă¨čăăăćŚéŁăăââă ăăçśăăăŽăă¨ăŻăéĄăăăăăčĄăăŞăă¨ăăĺŞĺăŻĺ¤ŤăŽčŠąéĄăéżăăăăăŤăćŠă ăŤăăŽĺ ´ăçŤăĄĺťăŁăă çśčŚŞăŽć˛ťçăĺ§ăžăŁăŚăăăŽ2ĺš´éă复ă§ăăä˝č¤ĺłťäťăŻä¸ĺşŚăĺ§żăčŚăăăă¨ăăŞăăŁăă彟弳ăĺăăŚéčĄäşşăŤç é˘ă¸éă°ăăćă§ăăăă ă ăă¤ăŚăŻĺ˝źăĺŞĺă大ĺăŤăăŚăăăă ăăĺćăŽç¸ćă§ăăćžćŹéçžăĺŚĺ¨ ăăçść ă§ĺ¸°ĺ˝ăăŚăăăăăšăŚăĺ¤ăăŁăă ĺŞĺăăă¤ăŚĺŚĺ¨ ăăŚăăăă¨ăăăŁăăăăćĽăćšă§ćžćŹéçžă¨ă¨ăăŤč˝ć°´ăăćăĺż ćťăŤăăăăŞăăă彟ăéçžăŤĺăăŁăŚćłłăă§ăăĺ§żăčŚăă ĺžăéçžăŻçĄäşăŤĺăŠăăçŁăă ăă§ăĺŞĺăŻćŻčŚŞăŤăŞăćŠäźă弪ăăăă 7ćĽĺžăĺłťäťăŻé˘ĺŠăćąăăăă彟弳ăŻćĺŚăăă ă ăăç ć°ăŽăă¨ăçĽăŁăäťă彟弳ăŻéăăćă§ĺ˝źăŽéťčŠąăăăăă 3ĺçŽăŽăłăźăŤă§ă¤ăŞăăă¨ă彟ăŽĺˇăă声ăčăăăŚăăăăé˘ĺŠäťĽĺ¤ăŽç¨äťśăŞăăăĺăŤäźăć°ăŻăŞăăă ĺŞĺăŻćśăăăăăçăŽčŠąăĺăĺşăăă¨ăă§ăăŞăăŁăăăăă¨éťčŠąăŽĺăăăăéçžăŽĺٰăčăăăŚăăăăĺłťäťĺăăăăă辤ăĄăăăŽĺŽćć¤ćťăăă ăăŽçŹéăăăăăŚăăćśăä¸ć°ăŤćş˘ăĺşăăăăăšăŚăçľăăăăćăćĽăăŽă ă ĺŞĺăŻăéăă声ă§ăçľăĺşăăăăŤă˝ă¤ăă¨ĺăăăăĺłťäťâŚâŚăăăé˘ĺŠăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻä¸çŹăéŠăăăăă ăŁăăăĺˇçŹăăŚč¨ăŁăăăĺŞĺăäťĺşŚăŻăŠăăŞćă使ăă¤ăăă ďźă ă厜ă§ĺž ăŁăŚăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻăéťčŠąăçŞçśĺăăăĺžăĺçśă¨ăšăăăčŚă¤ăăŚăăă ä¸ĺš´éćĺŚăçśăăŚăăĺŞĺăăăŞăäťćĽăŤĺćăăăŽă ăăďź ĺ˝źĺĽłăŤäźăăŤčĄăăă¨ăćąşăăă ăĺłťäťăăŠăăŤčĄăăŽăďźăéçžăĺăŠăăćąăăŞăăčż˝ăăăăŚăăă ăăăă彟ăŻä˝ăč¨ăăçŤăĄĺťăŁăăăăŽçŹéăéçžăŽĺŞăă襨ć ăŻăżăăżăăăĄăŤćăăăăťăŠćăăŞăŁăă ăăŽĺĽłâŚâŚăžăä˝ăäťćăăŚăăăăďź çé˘ăŽăă˘ăéăăă¨ăăĺŞĺăŻăăźăăŤăŽăă°ăŤçŤăŁăŚăăăšăźăăçăčăéŤăçˇć§ăčŚăăć´ăŁăéĄçŤăĄăŻć°ˇăŽăăăŤĺˇăăăăăŽćăçłăŤăŻĺŞĺă¸ăŽčť˝čă澎ăăă§ăăă ăăŠăăŤčĄăŁăŚăăă ďźăĺłťäťăĺˇăăĺ°ăăă ăăăăŞăă¨ăŻăă¤ăăć°ăŤăăăŽďźă ăé˘ĺŠĺąăŤăľă¤ăłăăŚăăăĺż čŚăăăăă ăăŽč¨čăŻéăéăŽăăăŤĺ˝źĺĽłăŽĺżăĺşăăă濥ăăä˝ăĺźăăăăŞăăă彟弳ăŻăŤăăłăăć¸éĄăéăăŤĺăĺşăăă ăĺżé ăăĺż čŚăăŞăăăăăľă¤ăłć¸ăżă ăă 彟弳ăć¸éĄăăăźăăŤăŽä¸ăŤç˝Žăăă¨ăăĺłťäťăŻăé˘ĺŠăă¨ăăäşćĺăăăăťăŠăžă§ăŤä¸ć忍ăŤćăăăă¨ăŻăŞăăŁăăĺŞĺăĺŻä¸čŚćąăăăŽăŻă2ĺĺăŽć °čŹćă ăŁăă ăăŠăăăŚćĽăŤĺćăăăŽăă¨ćăŁăăăçľĺąéăŽăăăăă彟ăŽéĄăĺ˛çŹă澎ăăšăă ăă¤ăŚăŞăăčŞĺăĺźčˇăăăăăăăŞăăă§ăăäťĺ˝źĺĽłăŻăă éăăŤč¨ăŁăăăćŹćĽăŞăăä˝č¤ăăăŽčłçŁăŽĺĺăčŤćąăă樊ĺŠăăăăăă§ăăç§ăŻ2ĺĺăăčŚćąăăŞăăŁăăăăă§ăăăžă ć ăăăăăŚăă¤ăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻä¸ćŠĺăŤé˛ăżăéˇă役ăĺŞĺăčŚăŁăă彟ăŻĺ˝źĺĽłăŽéĄăç´°éˇăćă§ć´ăżăĺˇăă声ă§č¨ăŁăăăäťăä˝ăŚĺźăă ďźă ăä˝č¤ăăăăăăăŽĺźăłćšăĺŤăŞăăĺ 复ă¨ĺźăłç´ăăŚăăăăăăăăăć¸éĄăŤăľă¤ăłăăŚĺ¸°ăŁăŚăăăŁăŚăăďźă 彟ăŻä¸ć忍ăăăŞéĄăăăăăăăăŻäżşăŽĺŽśă ăĺşăŚčĄăă¨č¨ă樊ĺŠăŻăĺăŤăŻăăăăăă ĺŞĺăŻçŽčăăŤĺžŽçŹăżăč¨ăŁăăă確ăăŤăăăŽć¨ŠĺŠăŻăŞăăăă§ăăĺŽĺżăăŚăä˝č¤ăăăé˘ĺŠč¨źćć¸ăĺăĺăŁăăăăăăŤĺşăŚčĄăăă ăžăă彟ăŽćăćŻăćăăĺˇăăçŽă§ĺ˝źăčŚă¤ăăăăććĽăŽć9ćăĺ¸ĺ˝šćă§ć¸éĄăćăŁăŚăăŚăă ăăăă çżćăćĽăŽĺşĺăŤăŻĺŞĺăŻĺşçşăăăă¨ăăćăç é˘ăăéťčŠąăăăăŁăŚăăăăéŤćŠăăăăçśăăăĺżčçşä˝ă辡ăăăžăăăă ăăăŁďźăăĺăăăžăďźă ç é˘ăŤĺ°çăăă¨ăćčĄăŻăžă çśăăŚăăă äťăĺŻä¸ăŽĺ¸ćăŻçśăĺĽĺşˇă§çăçśăăăă¨ă ăă ăŁăă çčˇĺ¸ŤăćčĄč˛ťç¨ăŽčŤćąć¸ăć渥ăăŚăăăçˇéĄăŻ300ä¸ĺ䝼ä¸ă ă§ăă䝼ĺćŻćăŁăĺ Ľé˘č˛ťă§ćŽéăŻăăŁăăŽ10ä¸ĺăăŠăăăŚăčśłăăŞăăŁăă äťćšăŞăăĺłťäťăŤéťčŠąăăăăă ĺˇăă声ăčăăăăăăŠăă ďźăă30ĺĺž ăŁăŚăăăă ăćĽăŞăă¨ăăăŁăŚââă ăĺŞĺăăăă§ăăăăăďźăĺłťäťăéźťă§çŹăăăăŠăăăžăĺăă¤ăăŚăăăă ăăďźă ăăăŞďź ăĺăăăŞăďźçśăĺżčçşä˝ă辡ăăăŚćčĄăĺż čŚăŞăŽďźââă ăăăă§ăćťăă ăŽăďźăĺłťäťăéŽăŁăă ăăŽč¨čăŤăĺŞĺăŻčłăçăŁăăăăăŞč¨ăćšăăäşşăăăăŽăďź ăăăăďźĺłťäťăćčĄč˛ťă300ä¸ĺ䝼ä¸ăăăăŽăă ăăć °čŹćăĺ ăŤćŻăčžźăă§ăăăŞăďźĺż ăé˘ĺŠăăăăďźă ăĺŞĺăäżşă誰ăăăĺăŽçśčŚŞăŽćťăćăă§ăăăă¨ăçč§ŁăăŚăăăăŞăéă渥ăăŽăŻăăă ăăăă§ăćçśăăçľăăŁăĺžăŤă ăă ăăă ăč¨ăă¨ăéťčŠąăŻĺăăăă ĺŞĺăŽéĄăŤăŻĺ°ćă澎ăăă§ăăăăă¤ăŚĺ˝źăŻçśăŤĺŻžăăŚćŹćăćăŁăŚăăăŻăă ăŁăăăăăăäťăŽĺ˝źăŽĺٰăŤăŻćŹć°ăŽćăăżă杲ăă§ăăă ăŞăă ďź 2ĺš´ĺăŽéŤćŠĺŽśăŽç ´çŁă¨çľăłă¤ăăŚčăăă¨ăĺśçśăŽĺşćĽäşă¨ăŻćăăŞăăŞăŁăŚăăă ăăăăăăŚăĺłťäťăčŁă§ä˝ăăäťćăăăŽă ăăăăăĺŽĺŽśăŻä¸ä˝ăŠăăăŁăŚĺ˝źăćăăăŚăăžăŁăăŽă ăăďź äťăčăčžźăä˝čŁăăŞăăçśăŽć˛ťç貝ăä˝ă¨ăăăăŽăćĺŞĺ ă ăŁăă ćčĄĺޤăŽćăéăăăăĺ çďźă ăéŤćŠăăăăçść§ăŻăŞăă¨ăćăĄăăăăžăăăă ĺŞĺăŻăăăăč¸ăćŤă§ä¸ăăăă äťčˇäşşăŤçśăäťťăăĺ¸ĺ˝šćăŤćĽăă ăăĺłťäťăŻăŠăăŤăăŞăăŁăă çŚăŚéťčŠąăăăăăăĺ¸ĺ˝šćăŤçăăăăăŠăăŤăăăŽďźă ăäşĺ厤ă ăă ăäťăăé˘ĺŠćçśăăć¸ăžăăŤćĽăŚăăăŞăďźă ĺłťäťăŻčăçŹăŁăŚč¨ăŁăăăć°ĺĺăŽĺĽç´ă¨ăĺăăŠăŁăĄă大äşă ă¨ćăďźă ăçľăăăžă§ĺž ă¤ăăâŚâŚĺłťäťăăéĄăăäťçśăŻăéăĺż čŚăŞăŽăă ăăăćťăă ăăčŹĺźäťŁăĺşăăŚăăăăăăăă ăč¨ăă¨ă彟ăŻéťčŠąăĺăŁăă ĺăłéťčŠąăăăăăăăă§ăŤéťćşăĺăăăă ĺŞĺăŻćŻă芰ăžăăăăŞćčŚăŤčĽ˛ăăăă 彟弳ăŻăăŁă¨ăăéăŤĺ ¨ăŚă夹ăŁăŚăăžăŁăă äťăĺŞĺăćăŁăŚăăĺŻä¸ăŽäžĄĺ¤ăăăăŽăŻăçľĺŠć蟪ă ăă ăŁăă 彟弳ăŻć蟪ăĺ¤ăăéŤç´ĺŽéŁžĺşăŤčśłăč¸ăżĺ Ľăăă ăă厢ć§ăčłźĺ ĽćăŽé ĺć¸ă¨č¨źćć¸ăŻăćăĄă§ăăďźă ăăŻăăăĺŞĺăŻćĽăă§ć¸éĄă塎ăĺşăăă ăăăăă¨ăăăăăžăăć蟪ăŻć¤ćťăŤĺşăĺż čŚăăăăŽă§ăććĽăžăăéŁçľĄăăăŚăăă ăăžăăăă ĺŞĺăŻĺ迍ăă声ă§č¨ăŁăăăćĽăă§ăăăă§ăăäťćĽä¸ăŤăéĄăăăžăăă ăăŻăăăĺşĺĄăć蟪ăćăĄĺťăăă¨ăăăăŽćăăăç˝ăăŚçšç´°ăŞćăć蟪ăąăźăšăćźăăăă ăăăŽć蟪ăă¨ăŚăç´ ćľăăç§ă財ăăăă éĄăä¸ăăĺŞĺăŽçŽăŤéŁăłčžźăă§ăăăŽăŻă彟弳ăăăŽä¸ă§ćăćăă§ăăäşşçŠââćžćŹéçžă ăŁă | LEARN_MORE | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&ut | 弳ăŽĺăčŞăżăăĺ°čŞŹă大çšé | https://www.facebook.com/61559954921868/ | 131 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | heplk.com | IMAGE | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/473075575_2431707563846689_5579426909027268079_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=110&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=gkeMrh9CveIQ7kNvgGl28_q&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AKCVKvG_F6WGHGCYsbpCTa2&oh=00_AYDXhxWYkux_Aqg0hBHoUc6giZOi2eZZqWYGhPuh8GmXEw&oe=678B7065 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | 弳ăŽĺăčŞăżăăĺ°čŞŹă大çšé | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,048 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664064}' |
Yes | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 | ë ë§ě ëŹ´ëŁ ěąí°ëĽź ě˝ě´ëł´ě¸ěđ | ě¨ě§ě ë ę˛°íź 3ë ë§ě ëëě´ ě ě 졨í ë¨í¸ ěŹě´íęłź ě ě댏뼟 ę°ěĄě§ë§, ꡸ë 첍ěŹëě ě´ëŚě ëśë ë¤. ě´íżë ě ěě ꚏ ë¨ěë ě돴ę˛ë 기ěľíě§ ëŞťíęł ě§ě ěę˛ ě´ë ę˛ ë§íë¤. âě´ě Żë°¤ ꡸ ěŹě ëšěĽ ě°žěë´!â... ě§ě ë ě¤ěí¸ëُ 돸ę°ě ěě ěěě ë¤ë ¤ě¤ë ëŽě í¸íľ ě댏뼟 ë¤ěë¤. âęşźě ¸!â ꡸ ě댏 ë¤ěë 돴ě¸ę° ꚨě§ë ěëŚŹę° ě´ě´ěĄë¤. ě§ě ë ęšě´ ě¨ě ë¤ě´ěŹęł ě¤ěí¸ëُ ěěźëĄ ë¤ě´ę°ë¤. ě¤ěí¸ëُ ěě ěë§ě´ěęł , ě´íě 욨ëě ěě ěě¸í íě ě ě§ęł ěěë¤. ꡸ë ë§¤ë Ľě ě´ěě§ë§, ěě긴 ěźęľ´ě ě´ëĄę˛ 돟ë¤ě´ ëśë ¸ě ę°ěĽě댏ě ěěë¤. ě§ě ę° ëśëŹě¨ ěŹěë ëëźě ě돴ę˛ë 몝 íë¤. ꡸ë ë ë˛ęą°ë˛ě ěą ě´ëě ě ěě´ěź í ě§ ëŞ°ëź íęł ëę° ěźę¸°ë ëŻí ëěšěë¤. ꡸ë, ě§ě ę° ě´ ěŹě뼟 ěŹę¸° ëśëĽ¸ ę˛ě´ë¤. ě§ě ë ë ěŹëě´ ě´ě Żë°¤ ě ě댏뼟 ę°ěĄë¤ë ěŹě¤ě ě´íě´ ěë ę˛ ěŤěë¤. ęˇ¸ë¤ ěŹě´ě ęłě˝ě ěí늴 ě돴ë ëŞ¨ëĽ´ę˛ 3ë ę° ę˛°íźě ě ě§í늴 ë°ëĄ ě´íźí ě ěěë¤. ě§ě ë 7ë 째 ě´íě ëšěëĄ, 3ë 째 ě´íě ěě´íëĄ ěěë¤. ě´íě ě§ě ěę˛ ë ěŹëě ꡸ě ěěŹě ëśíě ę´ęłěź ëż ě´ ę´ęłëĽź ë°ě´ëě´ěë ě ëë¤ęł ę˛˝ęł íěë¤. ě§ě ę° ë¤ę°ě늰 ë§íë¤. âëíë, 9ě ë°ě íěę° íë ěĄí ěěľëë¤. ě§ę¸ ěźě´ëě늴 ëŠëë¤.â ě´íě ě°¨ę°ě´ ëëěëĄ ěě ě ěë ěŹě뼟 ëŤě´ě ¸ëź ěłë¤ë´¤ë¤. ěíŠě´ ě´í´ę° ëě§ ěë ëŻí ëěšěë¤. ě§ě ë ě´ëĽź ëěšěąęł ěŹě뼟 íĽí´ ë§íë¤. â먟ě ę°ë´ě.â ěŹěë ꡸ě ěź íěëŚ ëě ëŻ ěˇě ë¤ęł ę¸í ëę°ë¤. ě´íě ěŹě í ěěí ěźęľ´ëĄ ě§ě ěę˛ ëëíę˛ ëŹźěë¤. âě´ě Żë°¤ ě´ë ěěě´?â ě§ě ë ěę° ëŠěšŤíë¤. ęˇ¸ę° ěě ě ěěŹíęł ěë 깸ęš? ě§ě ë ě˝ę° 긴ěĽí늰 ë§íë¤. âěěŚ íëĄě í¸ę° ë돴 íë¤ě´ě ěŹëŹ´ě¤ěě ě ë¤ěě´ě.â ë§ě´ ëëěë§ě ě´íě ëě뼟 íë ¸ë¤. ꡸ě ěźęľ´ě ě°¨ę°ę˛ ëłíęł , 욨ëěě ěźě´ë ě¤ě íěŹëĄ 몸ě ę°ěë¤. ě§ě ë ꡸ě ëˇëިěľě 보늰 ëě´ ě´ě§ ě´ě´í´ěĄë¤. ě´íě ě§ě ěěě íě ę˝ę˝ ę°ëŚŹęł ë¤ë ë¤. ë§ěš ě§ě ę° ęˇ¸ě 몸ě ëł´ë ę˛ ě겚ë¤ë ę˛ě˛ëź ë§ě´ë¤. íě§ë§ ě´ě Żë°¤, ęˇ¸ę° ěš¨ëěě ꡸ë 뼟 ěęł ěšěëźęł ěę°íě ëë ěě í ëŹëë¤. ě§ě ë ě¤ë ě욨 í¤ëëźě¸ě ěĽěí ë´ě¤ íëę° ëł´ěë¤. [ě ě ę°ě ë ¸ěšě, ě˝íźěě í¨ęť ęˇęľ!] ě§ě ë ꡸ě ěź ě´íě´ ě ě´ě Żë°¤ ꡸ë ę˛ ě ě ěˇ¨í´ ęˇ¸ë ě íě ě겨 ě¸ěëě§ ěę˛ ëěë¤. ꡸ë ꡸ë 뼟 첍ěŹëě ë체íěźëĄ ěŹę˛źë ę˛ě´ë¤. ě§ě ë ę°ě´ě´ ě°˘ě´ě§ë ę˛ ę°ěë¤. ě§ě ę° ě ě ě ě°¨ë ¤ëł´ë ě´íě ě´ëݏ ě¤ě뼟 ë§ěšęł ě ě ęą°ě¸ ěě ě ěěë¤. ě§ě ę° ęˇ¸ěŞ˝ěźëĄ ë¤ę°ę° ë ꡸ëěëŻ ě ě¸ ë¨ěśëĽź ěąě줏ë¤. ꡸ë ꡸ë ëł´ë¤ í¨ěŹ í¤ę° 인기ě, ꡸ë ë ë°ëě ě¸ě ꡸ě 몊ě íě´ëĽź ë뼴기 ěí´ ěě ëťě´ěź íë¤. ꡸ë ę˛ ě´ěŹí ě´íě ëĽíě´ëĽź 돜ě´ěŁźęł ěëë° ě´íě ë¨ęą°ě´ ě¨ę˛°ě´ ꡸ë ě ęˇę°ě ě í´ěĄë¤. ě´íě ę°ëźě§ 몊ěëŚŹëĄ ě´ë ę˛ ë§íë¤. âě§ě ěź, ě´ě Żë°¤ ꡸ ěŹě... ë ë§ě§?â | LEARN_MORE | https://weihunyu.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=11315 | ěě¤ě ě¸ęł | https://www.facebook.com/61557428073507/ | 702 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | weihunyu.com | VIDEO | https://weihunyu.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=11315&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/472764832_9030566966989021_738395734841147366_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=109&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=lDGTo8pXaYEQ7kNvgEr6d6w&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AKCVKvG_F6WGHGCYsbpCTa2&oh=00_AYAnRkZFBRvSFTqTJ-0DFlcRt1O4gTG2GobYuaA6ek-Z2A&oe=678B7604 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | ěě¤ě ě¸ęł | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,050 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
No | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 | Read next chapter | Emerging from the confines of marriage, she blossomed from a mundane housewife to a renowned painter with a legion of admirers. When her ex-husband sought reconciliation at her doorstep, he witnessed her in the arms of a prominent man. "Meet your new sister-in-law!" ===== In the dimly lit, opulent private cinema, the most exclusive jewelry auction was being broadcast live. "One million, going once, going twice--" The rich cadence of the auctioneer's voice echoed through the room, the man tightened his grip around Alicia Bennett's waist... With the intensity between them only grew fiercer as time passed... The auctioneer's gavel fell. "Sold for ten million! Let's give a round of applause to Mr. Joshua Yates!" The name struck Alicia like a lightning bolt. Her body instantly went rigid, something that the man couldn't help but notice, flicked lazily toward the screen. The camera zoomed in on Joshua Yates's face, every detail of his familiar features displayed in perfect clarity. "Joshua Yates, the second son of the Yates family... an acquaintance perhaps?" he drawled, the corners of his mouth tugging into a sly smile. Alicia's frown deepened. The last thing she wanted was to discuss it, she didn't respond. The man, upon seeing the situation, chuckled lightly before his movements grew even more relentless... ...... When it was over, Alicia took advantage of the man's time in the shower and quietly made her escape. When Caden Ward finally emerged from the bathroom, not catching sight of the woman's figure, he curled his lips slightly. Moments later, his assistant, Hank Ford, burst into the room, clearly on edge, "Er, apologies, Mr. Ward. I let my guard down. Give me a moment, and I'll have her brought back immediately." They had just returned to the country, taking every precaution. And yet, a woman had managed to slip through the cracks of their security. Caden's features calm, almost indifferent. "No need. I was... a willing participant." Hank's eyes widened in shock. In all the time he'd known Caden, the man had never slept with a woman,even physical contact. There were even rumors that Caden might suffer from some secret ailment. Yet now, those whispers seemed to evaporate in the face of this unexpected turn of events. Before Hank could make sense of it, Caden's deep voice pulled him back to reality. "I want you to look into Joshua's personal life. Have the report on my desk in half an hour." Tonight, Alicia had stumbled into his room, feverish and desperate. It was obvious she'd been framed. And then came the revelation--Alicia was still a pureness. Two years of marriage to Joshua... Yet she was still untouched? Caden's lips curled into a satisfied smile. But as he reflected, one thing became abundantly clear--Alicia had no idea who she'd been with due to the d*ug's effects. ... By the time Alicia returned home, the first light of dawn filtered through the windows. Only then did she realize how long she had been out. But before she could dwell any further, her phone rang. It was her bestie, Monica Flynn, calling. "Alicia!" Monica practically screeched from the other end of the line, her voice high-pitched with worry. "How are you now?" Alicia exhaled deeply, kicking off her shoes carelessly. "I've been better," she murmured. Monica's anger bubbled over, her words sharp and unrelenting. "Joshua's beyond disgusting! If he doesn't want to stay married, he should just grow a spine and divorce you already! What kind of sick man would scheme against his own wife?" The sharp pain of betrayal shot through Alicia's chest. Yesterday was their second anniversary. Joshua had texted her, suggesting they celebrate. Daring to hope he had changed, she had dressed up to the nine's, only to be met with disappointment and a d*ug-laced drink that sent her spiraling into a night of confusion and chaos. Was Joshua really the mastermind behind this? Swallowing the bitterness that tried clawing its way to the surface, Alicia forced herself to climb the stairs, her movements slow and weary. "It's fine, Monica. I'll handle it." Monica, ever protective, wasn't convinced. "'Handle it'? What do you mean you'll handle it? Just say the word, and I'll be over in a heartbeat." Alicia couldn't help the small, tired smile that tugged at her lips, hanging up the phone. But her heart still felt heavy, just as she lost focus, the door to her bedroom creaked open. She lifted her gaze, and almost instantly, her stomach dropped. There, fresh from a shower, a towel wrapped loosely around his waist, stood Joshua. He stared down at her. Chapter 2 Divorce Alicia snapped out of her daze as soon as she met the icy gaze of Joshua, her so-called husband. His expression remained unchanged, cold and indifferent as ever, as though he was looking at a stranger. The only thing out of place was the scars on his lips. A wave of disgust washed over her, she pushed him away and was about to enter. Joshua frowned, his hand shooting out to grab her wrist. "Alicia, what's with the attitude?" He seemed quite unhappy with her this time, which was a rare thing, considering how little he bothered to come home. Normally, Alicia would have welcomed him back with open arms, a flicker of joy lighting up her tired features, but today she looked drained, almost hollow. She didn't resist his grip, meeting his gaze with a calmness that unnerved him. "Haven't I always been like this? Obedient, sensible, making sure the house is in order, ensuring you're comfortable, ready to give your best at work." A small, bitter smile tugged at her lips. "Isn't that what you like most about me? It makes things easier for you, doesn't it? Frees up time for your other... 'special someone'." Joshua's eyes darkened at the veiled accusation. Denial hovered on his lips, but he didn't bother. Why should he? He dropped her hand and said gruffly, "Actually, that's why I'm here. We need to talk." Alicia vigorously rubbed her wrist, as though she was trying to erase his touch. "So, are you planning to finally go public with her?" Joshua's expression twisted instantly, his calm facade cracking. "What do you know? Did you have me stalked by a private investigator or something?" Alicia let out a soft, humorless laugh. "Is that necessary? Last night, you spared no expense to make her happy. Even a blind person could tell you're mad about her." He stared at her, unsettled by her icy tone. It was still her voice, still Alicia, but there was something different about her... For some reason, he felt inexplicably hurt, like a thorn pricking his heart. Perhaps it was the way she looked at him now--her eyes, once warm and filled with love for him, were now completely empty. There was no anger, no pain, just... nothing. It was a stark contrast to the woman who used to look at him as if he were her entire world. For reasons he couldn't explain, the sight of her like this stirred something in him, an unfamiliar dissatisfaction. Annoyed by his own reaction, Joshua decided to hit back, his voice harder now. "She's pregnant. It's a delicate pregnancy, so I bought her a little something to lift her spirits." Alicia's fists clenched before she could stop them. P**gnant? So, the nights she had stayed up waiting for him to come home, he'd been with another woman, working diligently to start a new family? Seeing Alicia wince a little, Joshua felt a flicker of satisfaction. "It's not that I don't want to touch you," he said, voice dripping with condescension. "You're just about as thrilling as watching paint dry. No man would want that." His cruel words pierced through Alicia, yet she managed to remain composed on the surface. It wasn't that she avoided intimacy; she just wasn't the one to initiate it. Did that make her so undesirable? Was it a sin? Taking a slow, steady breath, Alicia willed herself to stay calm. "Fine," she replied quietly. "Let's get a divorce then. You can give her the title she wants." The word "divorce" made Joshua's eyelid twitch involuntarily. He scoffed, eyes narrowing with suspicion. "Is this another one of your games?" Convinced he was right, his voice grew colder, more biting. "Alicia, for two years, you've pulled every childish stunt, begging for my attention. Aren't you tired yet? Because I sure as hell am." He paused, letting his disdain sink in. "You claim to love me so much. Could you really walk away from me?" Alicia couldn't help the bitter laugh that escaped her. Love him? Did he even understand what that meant? When Joshua's business had crumbled, leaving him with nothing but debt and shattered dreams, it had been Alicia who emptied her savings to pull him from the wreckage. Out of gratitude--or maybe obligation--he had married her. For two long years, she had been the dutiful wife, supporting him as he clawed his way to success. And what had Alicia gotten in return? She had been cast aside like a useless relic, while another woman carried his child. Her love, her loyalty, had been ground into the dirt beneath his feet. To care for this man any longer would be masochism. Her voice steady, Alicia said, "Draft the divorce agreement. I'll agree to whatever terms you want." And with that, she turned and disappeared through the door, leaving Joshua standing alone in the hallway. For a moment, he stared after her angrily, but then a cold, mocking smile tugged at his lips. Fine, she can play the martyr. He doubted she could keep it up for long. Storming out of the house, Joshua headed straight to the apartment where his lover, Lilliana Green, awaited him. "Well, that was fast," she teased upon hearing Joshua was getting a divorce, raising a brow. "Seems she wasn't as tough to deal with as you claimed." "She's cunning," Joshua muttered, the edge of suspicion creeping into his voice. "I don't know if she's actually agreeing to the divorce or just playing me." Lilliana's arms draping lazily around his neck, "Relax, Joshua, even if she changes her mind, it's too late." Joshua's brow furrowed. "What do you mean?" Chapter 3 Letting Go Lilliana's eyes flickered with shadowy intent. She wasn't foolish enough to show her cards now, so she waved it off with an effortless excuse. "During your two-year marriage, she has lived quietly in the shadows as a mere housewife, disconnected from your world. When you're assertive, would she dare to say a word?" Joshua pursed his lips into a hard line. During the past two years, Alicia had indeed done everything for him--given him support and solace. She had loved him fiercely, but at the end of it all, what value did love truly hold? Against all odds, he had clawed his way to the top, and he'd finally grasped the power he craved. That success, however, hadn't come easy, and it wasn't love that secured his position--it was alliances with the powerful. The prestige of the Green family daughter, that title alone, was worth far more than Alicia's devoted love. As these thoughts plagued his mind, Lilliana said happily, "Joshua, congratulations on escaping the grind. Shall we celebrate?" For a moment, Joshua's gaze flickered down to her, but Alicia's indifferent face suddenly flashed before his eyes. Since leaving the house earlier, Alicia hadn't once called him to ask for his whereabouts. Before, if he had been upset with her, she would've called him in a panic. A sharp, inexplicable irritation surged within him. Without thinking, he pushed Lilliana back, "You're only a few weeks' pregnant. Be careful." Lilliana, sharp as ever, sensed he was distracted. "Joshua, what's wrong?" she asked gently. "Don't you want to get divorced?" Joshua's response was instant. "Of course I want to divorce her." Her eyes narrowed as she studied him. "Then why don't you seem very happy?" Joshua offered a quick excuse, his voice steady but distant. "My father's condition has worsened. He doesn't have much time left, and Caden returned last night. He's likely here to claim his inheritance. I need to figure out how to handle him." Lilliana blinked, momentarily thrown. "Caden? Your brother from your father's first marriage? He doesn't even carry the Yates name anymore. What right does he have to fight you for the inheritance?" Joshua's expression darkened. It was true--but at the end of the day, he was still the son of a home-wrecker. All these years of relentless effort had not only been to carve out a name for himself in the Yates family, but to push Caden into the shadows where he belonged. One way or another, Joshua was hell-bent on winning. Meanwhile, Alicia stirred from her sleep. Darkness had already fallen, yet she felt even more drained than before. It was because her dreams revolved around that stranger. when her phone buzzed with a call from Monica did she snap out of her daze. "Alicia, I got your bl**d test results. I passed them to a friend of mine with some serious connections. He's digging around to see who bought the stuff." Alicia sat up a little straighter, her mind sharpening. "Thanks, Monica. Appreciate it." "If you really want to thank me, do me a favor: stop obsessing over that j**k. And after the divorce, focus on your career. You owe me that much." Alicia's chest warmed, her head lowering in quiet gratitude. "I know, I know." Now that she thought about it, she had come to the realization that her feelings for Joshua had never been pure love--they were born out of a debt, a sense of obligation. Her family's expectations had always weighed heavily on her, and in that lonely, stifled childhood, it was Joshua who had been there. His companionship had nurtured a vague affection she'd confused for love. "Lucky for me, love's never been something I've held onto tightly," Alicia murmured. "These last two years... I'll just see it as repaying his kindness." Monica paused, her usual boldness tempered with thoughtfulness. She knew better than anyone how, once upon a time, Joshua had indeed loved Alicia. But, it turned out love could be a fleeting thing. "Alicia, I really hope you've let go for good," Monica said with a convicted sigh. A sharp pang hit Alicia's chest, her eyes stinging as she fought back the urge to cry. Quickly, she pressed her hand to her eyelids, refusing to let the tears fall. It was only then she noticed something startling. Stunned, she stared at her hand. The wedding ring--something she had once held onto so tightly--was gone. Gone for a whole day and night, and she hadn't even noticed. Suddenly, her heart felt lighter, the weight of everything she'd been carrying beginning to lift. She whispered, more to herself than anyone, "Yes, I've truly let go." ... It didn't take long for Joshua to notice. He had returned to grab something quickly when his eyes fell on her hand. His brow furrowed as he asked, without thinking, "Where's your wedding ring?" Chapter 4 Her Nemesis Alicia's only concern now was leaving Joshua, so she ignored his question and asked flatly, "Are the divorce papers ready yet?" That word again--"divorce". Irritation flickered across Joshua's eyes. "What's the rush?" he snapped, his voice cold and sharp. "My father's finalizing his will, and if word gets out about my divorce, it'll ruin my standing. Now, pack your things--we're having dinner at the Yates Mansion this afternoon." With Caden's return, the family was throwing a welcome-home dinner for him. They also hoped that by doing so, it'd lift the spirits of Jerald Yates, Joshua's father. However, maintaining the charade of a happy marriage was the last thing on Alicia's mind. "I'm not going," she announced curtly. "Just get the divorce finalized and stop wasting my time." Joshua laughed, a sound that held no warmth. "Oh, come on, Alicia. Stop pretending. You hid the ring because you don't actually want to leave me, right? You can't stand the thought of being without me." He leaned in, smirking, and added, "You've worked hard these past two years. Even if we divorce, I'll still take care of you--as long as you keep me happy." Alicia's eyes widened, disbelief turning into anger. Hid the ring? Couldn't bear to be without him? His arrogant words sounded like nails on a chalkboard to Alicia's ears. With a sharp sneer, she shot back, "Oh, Mr. Yates, how could I possibly make you happy? Don't worry, I'll return the ring--wouldn't want this plain Jane to irk you, right? Once you have it, we're finalizing the divorce immediately." But Joshua wasn't fazed by her venom. He thought he knew her too well, convinced this was just another ploy to get his attention. Without thinking too much, he tossed a bag at her. "We've got guests today. Dress appropriately, and don't make me look bad." Alicia looked down at the bag, her mind flashing back to the countless times she had visited the mansion dressed in modest, unassuming clothes-- doing everything to blend in, to please him and his family. But now, with their divorce looming on the horizon, Alicia no longer cared to play the part of a dutiful wife. After slipping into the outfit, she carefully applied a touch of makeup, just enough to bring out the vibrance in her already flawless complexion. The subtle enhancements accentuated her smooth skin and delicate features, lending her a certain glow. When Joshua saw her descending the staircase, he froze for a brief moment, eyes lingering. Perhaps it was the way the dress hugged Alicia's graceful curves, making her seem more alluring than usual. At the entrance of the Yates Mansion, they both slipped into their familiar roles, masking the tension between them with practiced ease. Alicia casually looped her arm through Joshua's, their movements synchronized as they walked into the courtyard. Though Jerald was too ill to receive anyone, the grand hall bustled with life, relatives filling the space with chatter. The noise hummed around her, but for some reason, as soon as Alicia crossed the threshold, a sharp chill pricked at her skin. She instinctively looked up, her gaze immediately drawn to the figure lounging casually at the far end of the room. Legs crossed, dark shirt unbuttoned just enough to reveal a sliver of his collarbone, the man oozed arrogance, his presence commanding. When Alicia's eyes finally met his-- a familiar, authoritative stare that pinned her in place-- her mind raced as emotions began to surge uncontrollably. Joshua noticed the shift in her demeanor, his brows furrowing as he asked, "What's going on with you?" Alicia's breath caught in her throat. One word escaped her lips, barely audible. "Caden?" Just the mention of his name sent a chill down her spine. To her, Caden was the embodiment of her nightmares. Due to their families' friendship, their paths first crossed at the tender age of ten. Caden, having taken a year off, transferred to her school, and from that moment, Alicia's perfect world began to unravel. She could no longer claim the top spot. No matter how relentless her efforts, no matter how late she stayed up studying, Caden was always a step ahead. He would outscore her by the smallest of margins--a point, maybe two--leaving her perpetually stranded in second place. Anyone else might have accepted defeat, settled into the role of runner-up. But not Alicia. Born into the once prestigious Bennett family, she was raised under the suffocating weight of living up to her family name. Excellence wasn't just a goal--it was the currency by which she could earn her parents' affection. Failure was not an option, yet Caden had the audacity to snatch away everything she'd worked for with what seemed like effortless ease. It was as if he'd set his sights on her from the very beginning, and Alicia, stubborn to a fault, refused to back down. Their rivalry spanned over a decade, a relentless battle fought both openly and in the shadows, and their final showdown took place in college, just before their graduation, at the national competition. Alicia poured her heart and soul into that moment, her focus razor-sharp as she aimed for nothing less than perfection. And she achieved it, having garnered a perfect score. But Caden, ever the serpent, had bribed the judges, twisting the results in his favor. Alicia was forced, once again, into second place. The sting of injustice was deep, but the harshest blow came from her father, Phil Bennett. Over the phone, his voice dripped with disappointment in her ranking. Alicia, having grown accustomed to his tirades, said nothing. She waited for his anger to ebb, then asked quietly, "I'm graduating soon. Will you come back?" Her mother, Donna, had always been her softer solace. She comforted Alicia that day, promising they'd be there for her graduation. But life had other plans. Phil and Donna, rushing back from Itrubisite to attend the graduation, perished in a tragic plane crash. Overnight, Alicia's world crumbled, left an orphan in this cruel world. Since that day, she had never challenged Caden again. Afterward, Caden left Warrington to build his career overseas. ... "He's back for the inheritance," Joshua muttered, his voice barely audible. Alicia cast him a sidelong glance as he continued, "With a family empire as big as ours, an eldest son like him wouldn't give up so easily." Her brow furrowed slightly. It was true--the Yates empire was massive, a legacy most would kill for. But Caden had accumulated his own fortune, surpassing even the family's vast wealth. Did he really care about the inheritance? Then again, this was Caden. Competing was in his blood. Even if he didn't care about the fortune itself, he'd fight tooth and nail just to win, to toy with everyone else. The man had a knack for stirring chaos purely for his own amusement. Alicia had been his rival for as long as she could remember, and even now, the thought of giving him so much as a glance felt like a waste of energy. She turned to walk away. But Joshua caught her wrist, his grip firm yet tense. "I know you two don't get along," he said. "But he's still my elder brother. We need to maintain appearances." Her body stiffened at the touch, and she immediately tried to pull her hand free. Joshua's frown deepened. "Alicia, behave," he hissed. Irritation flared in her chest. "I'm not refusing to go in. Just let go of me first. I don't want your filthy hands touching me." A flicker of something dark passed over Joshua's face, and instead of releasing her, he intertwined their fingers, squeezing them tight. Alicia bit her tongue, silently fuming. As they neared, Caden's gaze slowly lifted, his eyes narrowing in a lazy, almost bored assessment of them. "Caden," Joshua greeted, his tone strained, meeting his brother's gaze with forced cordiality. Caden's eyes flicked to their entwined hands, a smirk tugging at the corner of his mouth. "Your girlfriend?" he asked indifferently, as though he didn't recognize Alicia. Chapter 5 We Meet Again So Soon Alicia's nerves coiled tight like a spring. That voice... Her messy thoughts blurred into chaos, but one thing broke through the haze--Joshua's calm declaration. "Alicia and I have been married for two years now. She cares about me, so we kept it low-key. Just went straight for the registration; no ceremony. You were busy abroad at the time, so we didn't bother you." Caden arched a brow, his voice laced with venomous mockery. "Oh, so she's my sister-in-law." The way he spat the words "sister-in-law" felt more like a s*ap than a title, leaving no doubt about his contempt for her. Alicia could feel the man's sneer underneath every syllable. And all this was thanks to her so-called husband, Joshua. Her hand trembled as she snatched a tissue, vigorously wiping her hand. "Looks like Alicia's a bit of a germophobe," Caden observed, his tone a casual jab at her disgust. Joshua's expression darkened, the tension between them thickening. He hadn't expected her to humiliate him like this. "It seems I've spoiled her too much," he muttered, his voice low and tight with irritation. Caden's eyes gleamed with a dangerous glint. "If it's a serious condition, she should get treated. It could impact her role as a mother. You know how badly our father has wanted a grandchild." At this, something flickered across Joshua's eyes. Even though Alicia, his wife, was right beside him, he went ahead and lied through his teeth. "Thanks for the concern, Caden, but I already have good news for Dad. I just haven't gotten around to telling him yet." Caden's smirk deepened, his gaze flicking toward Alicia, who was about done with the bullshit of a charade. She quietly excused herself and strode off. "How far along is she?" he asked meaningfully. "Doesn't seem like she's pregnant." Joshua didn't miss a beat. "Just a month." The answer was as much a threat as it was an announcement. Now, the inheritance stakes had just been raised, and Jerald, ever focused on continuing the family line, would certainly take his unborn grandchild into consideration. Caden's smile hardened, and Joshua delivered the final blow with a smug undertone. "You'd better catch up, Caden. I can't always be one step ahead." Caden, unfazed, waved his hand lazily. "No rush." ... Alicia stepped onto the terrace, the cool night breeze washing over her skin. She drank in the fresh air hungrily to steady her nerves. Pulling out her phone, she quickly dialed the manager of the private cinema again. "Have you found the ring?" she asked anxiously. The manager hesitated, sounding troubled. "Ms. Bennett, we've searched thoroughly and questioned all the staff, but... we really couldn't find any ring." "Then..." Alicia clenched her fist, her mind racing. "Do you have the contact details of the guest who booked the room that day?" "I'm sorry, but due to our privacy policy, we can't disclose any information on our clients." Her heart sank. "I see," she sighed with resignation. "Please tell me immediately if anything turns up, okay?" In a perfect world, she could've just bought an identical ring and pass it off for the original. Unfortunately, Joshua had that ring custom-made, and it wasn't easy to replicate. After dinner, it started to rain. The relatives began to trickle out one by one. Joshua stood by her side as they made their way to the car, his eyes trailing down to her bare wrist. "If you liked that bracelet at the auction, then I can buy you something like it," he said coolly. Alicia had to resist the urge to roll her eyes sardonically. She didn't believe for a second that Joshua had a change of heart towards her. "Trying to buy my silence, huh?" Her words were sharp, slicing right through Joshua's tender facade. "No need. I have no desire to be tangled up in your affairs." Joshua hadn't intended to sound like that, but her mocking tone struck a nerve. His jaw clenched, and a bitter smile crossed his lips. "Fine. Don't take it. The money I spend on you is a waste anyway." Alicia bit the inside of her cheek before adding firmly, "Joshua, I already told you. I'm willing to leave this marriage empty-handed. Let's sign the divorce papers tomorrow morning and end this once and for all." His smile twisted into something dark, something dangerous. "What about the ring?" "I lost it." Joshua's eyes narrowed, his tone unrelenting. "I don't care about anything else. I want the ring." She could barely contain her frustration, her breath hitching as he delivered his final blow. "If you can't find it," he said coldly, "I'll assume you're holding onto it because you still care about me." Just then, Joshua's phone rang; it was Lilliana calling. "Joshua." She mewled his name pitifully. "The thunder is so loud. I'm scared to sleep alone... Can you come over?" The car wasn't heading anywhere near Lilliana's and Joshua was furious with Alicia, so without a second thought, he kicked her out into the rain and sped off. He didn't even leave her an umbrella. Alicia stood frozen by the roadside, the downpour quickly soaking through her clothes. The cold rain seeped into her bones, chilling her to the core. Gritting her chattering teeth, she swallowed the bitter taste in her mouth and began trudging along the drenched pavement. Behind her, the soft hum of an engine crept closer. A sleek, low-profile Maybach rolled up beside her, its headlights cutting through the rain. "Mr. Ward," the driver said, glancing back, "I believe that's Ms. Bennett." The car slowed to a stop. Caden glanced out the window, his sharp eyes narrowing on Alicia's lonesome figure. She had just paused, her fingers gathering the fabric of her soaked dress, tying it up to ease her stride. Caden's lips curled into a faint. "Invite her inside," he drawled. The car came to a halt next to Alicia. The driver stepped out, holding a large umbrella over her head, his voice polite. "Ms. Bennett, it's hard to find a cab at this hour. May I offer you a ride home?" Alicia's eyes flicked up, recognizing the man as the Yates family's driver. She hesitated for a moment before nodding, her voice soft but steady. "Thank you. Sorry for the inconvenience." However, as soon as she slipped into the backseat of the car, she locked eyes with its other passenger--Caden. "We meet again so soon, sister-in-law?" His voice, smooth as velvet, carried a hint of mischief. ...... What happens next? Available chapters here are limited, click the button below to install the App and enjoy more exciting chapters (Automatically jump to this novel when you open the app) &9& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.moboreader.net/63310322-fb-ena265_2- | Romance Novel | https://www.facebook.com/100083771162998/ | 48,295 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.moboreader.net | VIDEO | https://fbweb.moboreader.net/63310322-fb-ena265_2-1224-core1.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=331118&accid=233925549638247&exdata=B416D31AF7415CA566942AC8840B004ED1034CEAF985DF3A | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/472801570_886609826699944_3662455601786614302_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=108&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=15q82t-48GgQ7kNvgE_irf5&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AKCVKvG_F6WGHGCYsbpCTa2&oh=00_AYDEg8_7CCtl_S6triZxkYBEowOq06iaHaJ_PKGdBJgH7w&oe=678B6669 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Romance Novel | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,054 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
No | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
L'ĂŠpouse en fuite du PDG | En apprenant sa grossesse, elle a pleurĂŠ de bonheur, mais a vu son mari devenir intime avec son premier amour. Elle a laissĂŠ derrière elle un accord de divorce les larmes aux yeux, a cachĂŠ son ventre de femme enceinte et est partie triste... ===== ÂŤ Mme Wright, fĂŠlicitations ! Votre bĂŠbĂŠ est en très bonne santĂŠ. Âť Jenessa Wright est sortie de l'hĂ´pital, hĂŠbĂŠtĂŠe, serrant le rĂŠsultat du test de grossesse contre sa poitrine. Elle portait le bĂŠbĂŠ de Ryan ! En baissant les yeux, elle a inconsciemment caressĂŠ son bas-ventre encore plat et s'est mise Ă sourire. Souriant jusqu'aux oreilles, Jenessa s'est empressĂŠe de prendre son tĂŠlĂŠphone pour appeler Ryan Haynes, son mari, tout excitĂŠe Ă l'idĂŠe de partager cette merveilleuse nouvelle. Quand on parle du loup, on voit sa queue. C'ĂŠtait un message de Ryan. Il disait : ÂŤ Viens tout de suite Ă l'hĂ´tel Imodon. Âť L'hĂ´tel Imodon ? Pourquoi voulait-il qu'elle s'y rende tout d'un coup ? Jenessa ĂŠtait perplexe, mais n'a pas hĂŠsitĂŠ longtemps. Elle a hĂŠlĂŠ un taxi et s'est directement rendue Ă l'hĂ´tel. Comme Ryan voulait la voir, elle pensait qu'elle pouvait aussi bien lui annoncer la bonne nouvelle en personne. Le cĹur battant d'impatience, Jenessa est arrivĂŠe Ă l'hĂ´tel. Dès qu'elle est descendue de voiture, elle a remarquĂŠ que le hall d'entrĂŠe ĂŠtait ornĂŠ de fleurs et d'un tapis rouge flambant neuf, manifestement prĂŠparĂŠ pour une cĂŠlĂŠbration. Jenessa s'est arrĂŞtĂŠe, momentanĂŠment stupĂŠfaite, avant de se rappeler que c'ĂŠtait aujourd'hui leur anniversaire de mariage. Se pourrait-il que Ryan lui avait demandĂŠ de venir ici pour lui faire une surprise ? Elle souriait intĂŠrieurement en se demandant comment Ryan rĂŠagirait Ă l'annonce de sa grossesse. Jenessa s'est frayĂŠ un chemin Ă travers la foule, sa tenue sobre se fondant dans le dĂŠcor festif sans ĂŞtre remarquĂŠe. Il ne lui a pas fallu longtemps pour repĂŠrer l'homme Ă la beautĂŠ ĂŠblouissante qui se dĂŠtachait facilement de la foule. Ce n'ĂŠtait autre que son mari, Ryan Haynes, le père de leur bĂŠbĂŠ. Alors qu'un sourire se dessinait sur ses lèvres, elle a aperçu la femme qui se tenait Ă cĂ´tĂŠ de Ryan, et son sourire s'est figĂŠ. Maisie Powell ! Depuis quand Maisie ĂŠtait-elle revenue en ville ? Jenessa est restĂŠe scotchĂŠe sur place, paralysĂŠe en regardant Ryan et Maisie divertir les invitĂŠs comme un couple parfait. Des amis les entouraient et semblaient les fĂŠliciter. ÂŤ Maisie, tu es enfin de retour Ă la maison. Ăa mĂŠrite un toast ! Âť ÂŤ Ryan, après toutes ces annĂŠes, Maisie et toi ĂŞtes enfin rĂŠunis. Cela ne mĂŠrite-t-il pas un verre de cĂŠlĂŠbration ? Âť Peu Ă peu, les taquineries s'intensifiaient. Maisie, vĂŞtue d'une robe rouge sexy et d'un maquillage exquis, a gloussĂŠ gracieusement : ÂŤ ArrĂŞtez de nous taquiner, les gars. Ryan est dĂŠjĂ mariĂŠ et a une femme. Âť Ă la mention de Jenessa, la femme de Ryan, les gens autour ont manifestĂŠ du mĂŠpris. ÂŤ Jenessa ? Je t'en prie ! Ryan ne l'a ĂŠpousĂŠe que pour apaiser sa mamie ! Âť ÂŤ Exactement ! Ryan a toujours voulu t'ĂŠpouser. N'est-ce pas, Ryan ? Âť Ryan, qui ressemblait Ă un prince dans son costume sur mesure, dĂŠgageait un charisme cool et unique. ÂŤ Ăa suffit, arrĂŞte de taquiner Maisie Âť, a-t-il froidement dit. Dès qu'il a dit cela, les rires et les taquineries de ses amis se sont intensifiĂŠs. ÂŤ HĂŠ, Ryan, c'est quoi ce bordel ? Tu es tellement protecteur avec elle, n'est-ce pas ? D'accord ! Âť Au milieu de ces taquineries endiablĂŠes, Ryan gardait son sang-froid, mais un sourire indĂŠniable se dessinait Ă la commissure de ses lèvres. Ă cĂ´tĂŠ de lui, Maisie a baissĂŠ la tĂŞte et rougi timidement. Cette scène d'amour ĂŠtait tellement flagrante qu'elle a transpercĂŠ le cĹur de Jenessa. Elle ne savait pas quand ni comment, mais elle se retrouvait hors de l'hĂ´tel, et ne s'en est rendu compte que lorsque des gouttes de pluie froides ont frappĂŠ son visage. Le vent glacial et la pluie battante l'ont enveloppĂŠe, et en un rien de temps, un violent orage a ĂŠclatĂŠ, la trempant jusqu'aux os. Pourtant, elle n'a pas bougĂŠ d'un pouce et s'est contentĂŠe de fixer la pluie d'un regard vide. Pourquoi Ryan l'avait-il appelĂŠe ? Ătait-ce juste un stratagème pour qu'elle soit tĂŠmoin de leur affection et qu'elle cède gracieusement sa place de femme Ă sa Maisie bien-aimĂŠe ? La respiration de Jenessa est devenue saccadĂŠe. Regardant autour d'elle d'un air hĂŠbĂŠtĂŠ, elle pensait qu'il n'y avait rien d'autre Ă faire que de quitter cet endroit misĂŠrable. D'un pas raide et dĂŠlibĂŠrĂŠ, elle est rentrĂŠe Ă la maison sous la pluie. Debout sur le seuil de la porte, elle contemplait la maison familière, les pensĂŠes Ă la dĂŠrive. Il y a deux ans, alors que sa famille ĂŠtait au bord de la faillite, ils avaient tentĂŠ de sauver leur situation en la mariant Ă la famille Haynes. Au dĂŠpart, Ryan n'avait pas ĂŠtĂŠ d'accord, mais comme sa mamie gravement malade n'avait pas cessĂŠ de faire pression sur lui, il avait acceptĂŠ Ă contrecĹur ce mariage arrangĂŠ. Maintenant que la santĂŠ de sa mamie s'ĂŠtait amĂŠliorĂŠe et que Maisie ĂŠtait revenue de l'ĂŠtranger, Jenessa pensait qu'il ĂŠtait peut-ĂŞtre temps pour elle de faire ses valises et de quitter Ryan. Jenessa ne savait pas combien de temps elle ĂŠtait restĂŠe devant la maison avant que le bruit d'un moteur de voiture ne lui parvienne. Puis, la voix grave de Ryan s'est fait entendre Ă cĂ´tĂŠ d'elle. ÂŤ Jenessa, pourquoi restes-tu lĂ , sous la pluie ? Âť Chapitre 2 Je veux divorcer HĂŠbĂŠtĂŠe, Jenessa a levĂŠ les yeux et a croisĂŠ le regard sĂŠvère de l'homme qui se tenait devant elle. Avait-elle des visions ? Qu'est-ce que Ryan faisait ici ? Maisie venait de rentrer de l'ĂŠtranger. Ne devrait-il pas passer du temps avec la femme qu'il aimait ? Ryan ne pouvait s'empĂŞcher de froncer les sourcils en ne recevant pas de rĂŠponse de Jenessa. Cette dernière ĂŠtait trempĂŠe comme une soupe. Avec ses longs cheveux noirs plaquĂŠs sur ses joues pâles, l'eau dĂŠgoulinant rĂŠgulièrement des pointes, elle avait l'air si impuissante et pitoyable, ressemblant Ă un chaton noyĂŠ. ÂŤ Que diable t'est-il arrivĂŠ ? Âť, a demandĂŠ Ryan, le ton un peu plus dur que prĂŠvu. Jenessa s'est souvenue de la douceur et de l'affection qu'il avait manifestĂŠes tout Ă l'heure Ă l'ĂŠgard de Maisie Ă l'hĂ´tel, ce qui lui a fait mal au cĹur. Il ĂŠtait douloureusement clair que le comportement de Ryan Ă l'ĂŠgard de la femme qu'il aimait et de celle qu'il n'aimait pas ĂŠtait diamĂŠtralement opposĂŠ. S'efforçant d'avaler le goĂťt amer dans sa bouche, Jenessa a forcĂŠ un sourire et a expliquĂŠ en douceur : ÂŤ Il a commencĂŠ Ă pleuvoir quand je rentrais Ă la maison, et je n'avais pas de parapluie, alors j'ai ĂŠtĂŠ trempĂŠe... Âť Pendant qu'elle parlait, son nez l'a soudainement dĂŠmangĂŠe de façon insupportable et elle n'a pas pu s'empĂŞcher d'ĂŠternuer bruyamment. Mais au lieu d'avoir de la peine pour elle, Ryan a froncĂŠ les sourcils encore plus profondĂŠment. ÂŤ Tu n'es plus une enfant. Si tu te fais surprendre par la pluie, la première chose Ă faire en rentrant Ă la maison est de te sĂŠcher et de changer de vĂŞtements. Ai-je vraiment besoin de t'expliquer les choses ? Âť Le sourire de Jenessa s'est raidi. ÂŤ Je... je suis dĂŠsolĂŠe... Âť ÂŤ Va vite te changer, sinon tu vas attraper un rhume. Âť Ryan avait l'air trop impatient avec elle pour dire quoi que ce soit de plus, alors il l'a dĂŠpassĂŠe et est entrĂŠ dans la maison. Attraper un rhume ? Ce n'est qu'Ă ce moment-lĂ que Jenessa s'est souvenue qu'elle ĂŠtait enceinte ; elle ne pouvait pas se permettre d'ĂŞtre malade, sous peine de mettre le bĂŠbĂŠ en danger. C'est dans cet ĂŠtat d'esprit qu'elle s'est prĂŠcipitĂŠe dans sa chambre, a pris une douche chaude et a laissĂŠ l'eau tiède chasser le froid. EnveloppĂŠe dans une serviette de bain, elle est sortie de la salle de bain remplie de vapeur et a trouvĂŠ Ryan se tenant sur son chemin. Sans attendre de rĂŠponse, Ryan lui a tendu avec dĂŠsinvolture un mĂŠdicament contre le rhume et un verre d'eau. ÂŤ Tiens, prends ça. Âť Jenessa a regardĂŠ avec hĂŠsitation la pilule qu'il tenait, craignant qu'elle ne soit pas bonne pour le bĂŠbĂŠ. ÂŤ Eh bien, je pense que je me dĂŠbrouillerai très bien sans ça. Après tout, je ne suis restĂŠe sous la pluie qu'un moment. Âť ÂŤ Ryan, je... Âť, a-t-elle dĂŠgluti, luttant pour faire sortir les mots. ÂŤ Je veux divorcer. Âť L'agacement s'affichant sur son visage, son regard profond se plantant dans le sien. ÂŤ Qu'est-ce que tu as dit ? RĂŠpète ça. Âť Le cĹur de Jenessa a sautĂŠ un battement. Pourtant, elle est parvenue Ă rĂŠprimer les ĂŠmotions turbulentes qui l'habitaient et a bravement affrontĂŠ le regard intense de Ryan. ÂŤ J'ai dit que je voulais divorcer. Âť Une lueur d'ĂŠmotion indĂŠchiffrable a traversĂŠ les yeux de Ryan. ÂŤ Pourquoi ? Âť Jenessa a ĂŠtĂŠ surprise par sa question, la confusion et la perplexitĂŠ se lisant sur son visage. Pourquoi ? Pour rĂŠaliser son souhait d'ĂŠpouser sa bien-aimĂŠe Maisie, bien sĂťr. ÂŤ Parce que... Âť Sa voix s'est faiblement interrompue, incapable d'ĂŠnoncer l'ĂŠvidence. ÂŤ Ta famille est-elle Ă nouveau en difficultĂŠ financière ? Est-ce une question d'argent ? Âť Ryan l'a regardĂŠe d'un air glacial. ÂŤ Jenessa, ne connais-tu pas ta place ? Si tu as besoin de quelque chose, dis-le. Ne joue pas Ă ces petits jeux avec moi, parce que je n'ai pas la patience pour ces conneries. Âť Jenessa a serrĂŠ les poings et grincĂŠ des dents en silence. Ryan supposait donc que sa demande de divorce n'ĂŠtait qu'un de ses jeux, une tentative de tirer parti de la situation Ă son avantage ? Jenessa a souri avec amertume, mais ses yeux affichaient une dĂŠtermination fĂŠroce qui ne lui ĂŠtait pas coutumière. ÂŤ Ne t'inquiète pas, je ne veux rien d'autre que divorcer. Ryan, nous allons divorcer tĂ´t ou tard, alors quelle diffĂŠrence cela fait-il ? Âť Ryan n'a pas immĂŠdiatement rĂŠpondu. Il s'est contentĂŠ de la fixer d'un regard ĂŠtrange et sĂŠrieux. Son silence a plongĂŠ Jenessa dans une transe, un mĂŠlange d'anxiĂŠtĂŠ et d'inexplicable lueur d'espoir s'installant dans son cĹur. ÂŤ Ou... ne veux-tu pas divorcer ? Âť Chapitre 3 Attention, le monde ! L'idĂŠe que Ryan puisse vouloir rester mariĂŠ a fait bondir le cĹur de Jenessa, sa poitrine se soulevant d'impatience. Cependant, sous son regard rempli d'espoir, Ryan s'est froidement moquĂŠ. ÂŤ Jenessa, ne te fais pas d'illusions. Âť Son ton ĂŠtait empreint de moquerie, chaque mot transperçant le cĹur de Jenessa comme un couteau. ÂŤ Crois-tu vraiment que je dirais "non" ? Âť Il l'a regardĂŠe dans les yeux, d'un air glacial. ÂŤ N'oublie pas, Jenessa, que c'est toi qui as demandĂŠ le divorce. Tu ferais mieux de ne pas revenir vers moi en rampant lorsque tout sera dit et fait. Âť Sur ce, il a et parti en. Jenessa dĂŠcouragĂŠe, et le cĹur lourd de dĂŠception. Les larmes coulant sur ses joues, elle a dĂŠlicatement posĂŠ une main sur son bas-ventre, sentant la petite vie grandir en elle. Au dĂŠpart, elle avait l'intention d'annoncer la bonne nouvelle Ă Ryan, mais en l'espace de quelques heures seulement, ils ĂŠtaient sur le point de divorcer. Après avoir rĂŠflĂŠchi un moment, elle a dĂŠcidĂŠ qu'il valait mieux qu'il ne sache rien de sa grossesse. MĂŞme s'ils se sĂŠparaient, elle pourrait ĂŠlever le bĂŠbĂŠ toute seule. Puis, en repensant Ă son travail en qualitĂŠ de secrĂŠtaire de Ryan, elle a ressenti une certaine impuissance. La mamie de Ryan s'ĂŠtait arrangĂŠe pour qu'elle travaille sous les ordres de ce dernier afin d'entretenir leur relation, et Ă l'ĂŠpoque, cela lui avait semblĂŠ une bonne idĂŠe. Mais Ă prĂŠsent, les choses ĂŠtaient diffĂŠrentes, et il ĂŠtait grand temps qu'elle quitte ce travail. Le lendemain matin, dès que Jenessa est arrivĂŠe au siège du groupe WorldLink, quelques-uns de ses collègues les plus bavards l'ont encerclĂŠe. ÂŤ Jenessa, nous t'avons attendue toute la matinĂŠe ! Qu'est-ce qui se passe entre M. Haynes et cette femme, Maisie ? Sont-ils ensemble maintenant ? Âť ÂŤ La nouvelle selon laquelle M. Haynes a organisĂŠ une fĂŞte de bienvenue pour la top-modèle internationale Maisie Powell a fait le tour du monde durant la nuit. Il a mĂŞme conviĂŠ tous ses amis. On dirait qu'il compte rendre leur relation publique d'ici peu ! Âť ÂŤ C'est peut-ĂŞtre sa future ĂŠpouse ! Âť Jenessa a ressenti une pointe d'amertume en ĂŠcoutant. Après une petite hĂŠsitation, elle a rĂŠpondu avec dĂŠcouragement : ÂŤ Je ne sais pas grand-chose Ă ce sujet. Âť Ses collègues ont ĂŠchangĂŠ des regards et roulĂŠ des yeux. Manifestement, ils ne la croyaient pas. ÂŤ Allez, Jenessa ! Tu es la secrĂŠtaire de M. Haynes. Tu le connais mieux que quiconque. Comment pourrais-tu ne pas avoir d'informations privilĂŠgiĂŠes ? Crache simplement le morceau ! Âť Jenessa s'est forcĂŠe Ă sourire faiblement. Tout le monde savait qu'elle ĂŠtait la secrĂŠtaire de Ryan, mais très peu de gens savaient qu'elle ĂŠtait aussi sa femme. Il ĂŠtait mĂŞme rĂŠticent Ă rendre leur relation publique. Avec un lĂŠger soupir, elle s'est montrĂŠe plus ferme. ÂŤ Je ne sais vraiment pas, d'accord ? Ăa suffit avec les ragots. Âť Ses collègues voulaient insister davantage, mais Jenessa leur a coupĂŠ l'herbe sous le pied avant qu'ils ne puissent prononcer un mot de plus. ÂŤ J'ai dit qu'il n'y avait rien Ă dire, alors arrĂŞtez de me harceler. Avez-vous tous ĂŠtĂŠ embauchĂŠs pour faire des commĂŠrages ? Remettez-vous au travail ! Âť Son expression sĂŠvère les mettait mal Ă l'aise, mais elle avait raison : ils devaient s'exĂŠcuter. ÂŤ D'accord, d'accord, on a compris. Âť Tandis que Jenessa s'ĂŠloignait, ils ne pouvaient s'empĂŞcher de marmonner et de grommeler entre eux. ÂŤ Pour qui se prend-elle ? Jouant les hautaines et les puissantes. Humm ! Elle n'est pas la seule secrĂŠtaire ici. Âť ÂŤ Oui, quand elle a commencĂŠ Ă travailler ici sans crier gare il y a trois ans, nous avons tous pensĂŠ qu'elle avait une sorte de relation avec M. Haynes. Mais en fin de compte, il ne lui a pas accordĂŠ d'attention particulière et ne l'a jamais emmenĂŠe Ă des rĂŠunions avec des clients. C'est sa secrĂŠtaire personnelle, mais qu'en est-il ? Un simple plaisir pour les yeux ! Âť ÂŤ Ses jours ici sont comptĂŠs. Une fois que Maisie aura ĂŠpousĂŠ M. Haynes, Jenessa sera la première Ă partir. Après tout, qui ferait confiance Ă une jolie secrĂŠtaire autour de son homme ? Âť ÂŤ Exactement ! Âť Leurs rires et leurs bavardages dĂŠbridĂŠs emplissaient le bureau, mais Jenessa a fait la sourde oreille et s'est directement rendue Ă son bureau, se plongeant dans son travail. Elle savait comment ces collègues apparemment amicaux la voyaient rĂŠellement. Mais elle ne pouvait pas les contredire, car elle-mĂŞme avait l'impression d'ĂŞtre un objet de plaisanterie. Avant qu'elle ne s'en rende compte, il ĂŠtait temps de quitter le travail et la plupart des secrĂŠtaires ĂŠtaient dĂŠjĂ rentrĂŠes chez elles. Alors que Jenessa rangeait ses affaires, elle a reçu un coup de fil de sa meilleure amie, Brinley Lloyd. ÂŤ HĂŠ, j'ai vu les nouvelles ce matin. Qu'est-ce qui se passe entre Ryan et cette femme, Maisie ? Ce ne sont que des rumeurs, n'est-ce pas ? Âť En entendant l'incrĂŠdulitĂŠ dans la voix de Brinley, Jenessa a soupirĂŠ lourdement. ÂŤ C'est vrai. Âť Brinley a haletĂŠ de choc et d'horreur. ÂŤ C'est quoi ce bordel ? Âť Tout au long de la journĂŠe, Jenessa avait bien rĂŠflĂŠchi, et elle ĂŠtait donc relativement calme en expliquant : ÂŤ Tout d'abord, Ryan et moi ne nous sommes mariĂŠs que dans le cadre d'un accord. J'ai toujours su qu'il ne ressentait rien pour moi ; il m'a ĂŠpousĂŠe uniquement parce que sa mamie a insistĂŠ. Ă prĂŠsent que la femme qu'il aime est de retour, il n'y a plus de raison que je reste. Il est temps de les laisser ĂŞtre ensemble. Âť Brinley ĂŠtait Ă la fois incrĂŠdule et indignĂŠe. ÂŤ Mais⌠Et le bĂŠbĂŠ ? N'allais-tu pas lui faire la surprise ? Âť ÂŤ Serait-ce une merveilleuse surprise pour lui ? Ou un choc effroyable ? Âť Jenessa a instinctivement touchĂŠ son bas-ventre plat, un sourire amer sur les lèvres. ÂŤ De toute façon, ce qui compte, c'est que j'ai pris ma dĂŠcision : je veux divorcer et j'ĂŠlèverai ce bĂŠbĂŠ toute seule. Il n'a pas besoin de le savoir. Âť ÂŤ SĂŠrieusement, divorcer ? Es-tu sĂťre ? Âť Brinley semblait très inquiète. ÂŤ Si tu ne veux pas qu'il sache que tu es enceinte, tu ne peux donc pas continuer Ă travailler chez WorldLink. Ton ventre va devenir de plus en plus gros. Âť ÂŤ Ne t'inquiète pas. Je vais bientĂ´t dĂŠmissionner. Puis, je pourrai enfin recommencer Ă faire ce que j'aime vraiment. Âť Parler de ses rĂŞves perdus depuis longtemps a fait naĂŽtre un rare sourire sur le visage de Jenessa. ÂŤ Oh, mon Dieu ! Jenessa, tu vas reprendre ton ancienne carrière ? Âť Brinley ĂŠtait aux anges. ÂŤ C'est fantastique ! J'ai toujours cru en toi ! Tu es une designer de gĂŠnie ! Attention, le monde entier, Sloane Todd, une lĂŠgende dans le monde du design, arrive ! Tu n'aurais pas dĂť gaspiller tes talents en tant que secrĂŠtaire de Ryan pendant toutes ces annĂŠes. Il n'en vaut pas la peine ! Âť ÂŤ Sloane Todd... Âť Jenessa a ĂŠtĂŠ un peu ĂŠtourdie Ă l'ĂŠvocation de ce pseudonyme oubliĂŠ depuis longtemps. Pour Ryan, elle s'ĂŠtait perdue pendant tellement longtemps. Elle avait presque oubliĂŠ qui elle ĂŠtait rĂŠellement. ÂŤ Jenessa. Âť Une voix magnĂŠtique et masculine a soudainement retenti derrière elle. Surprise, Jenessa s'est retournĂŠe pour dĂŠcouvrir un Ryan, l'air sĂŠvère qui se tenait derrière elle. Chapitre 4 Un petit locataire ÂŤ Ry... Je veux dire, M. Haynes ! Que fais-tu ici ? Âť Jenessa ĂŠtait tellement surprise qu'elle cherchait les mots justes, complètement prise au dĂŠpourvu. Elle s'est empressĂŠe de mettre fin Ă l'appel, son regard inquiet scrutant le visage de Ryan Ă la recherche d'un signe de colère, se sentant inexplicablement effrayĂŠe et troublĂŠe. Quand Ryan ĂŠtait-il arrivĂŠ ? Qu'avait-il entendu ? ÂŤ N'ĂŠtions-nous pas censĂŠs aller voir mamie Ă l'hĂ´pital aujourd'hui ? Âť, a demandĂŠ Ryan, l'impatience transparaissant dans son ton. Ce n'est que lĂ que Jenessa s'est souvenue qu'ils avaient effectivement prĂŠvu de se rendre Ă l'hĂ´pital aujourd'hui. Baissant la tĂŞte pour s'excuser, elle a murmurĂŠ : ÂŤ Je... Je suis dĂŠsolĂŠe. Âť ÂŤ Hmph Âť, a grognĂŠ Ryan avec indiffĂŠrence. Comme s'il ne voulait pas lui accorder un autre regard, il s'est retournĂŠ et est sorti en disant d'un ton vif : ÂŤ Allons-y. Âť Il a fallu une seconde Ă Jenessa, hĂŠbĂŠtĂŠe, pour reprendre ses esprits et le rattraper rapidement. En route pour l'hĂ´pital, l'esprit de Jenessa ĂŠtait en ĂŠbullition. Un mĂŠlange complexe d'ĂŠmotions lui tourmentait le cĹur alors qu'elle se demandait anxieusement si Ryan avait entendu sa conversation avec Brinley. Mais ensuite, elle s'est dit que si Ryan avait entendu qu'elle avait l'intention d'ĂŠlever secrètement leur bĂŠbĂŠ toute seule, il ne serait pas aussi calme. Ils ĂŠtaient assis cĂ´te Ă cĂ´te sur la banquette arrière de la voiture, dans un silence total. Naturellement, le comportement distrait de Jenessa ĂŠtait un peu difficile Ă ignorer. Ryan ne pouvait plus le supporter. Les sourcils froncĂŠs, il a lĂŠgèrement tournĂŠ la tĂŞte et a demandĂŠ : ÂŤ Qu'est-ce qui t'arrive ? Âť Sa voix grave a fait sursauter Jenessa, interrompant ses pensĂŠes. ÂŤ R...rien Âť, a-t-elle bredouillĂŠ Ă la hâte. ÂŤ Vraiment ? Âť, a lentement dit Ryan, son ton contenant une pointe de doute. Le cĹur de Jenessa tambourinait. Alors qu'elle ouvrait la bouche pour se dĂŠfendre, la voix magnĂŠtique de Ryan a de nouveau retenti, cette fois-ci beaucoup plus près de son oreille. ÂŤ Si ce n'est vraiment rien, pourquoi m'ĂŠvites-tu donc ? Pourquoi ne me regardes-tu pas, hein ? Âť Jenessa, figĂŠe sur place, n'a pas osĂŠ bouger d'un pouce. Un ricanement Ă peine perceptible s'est ĂŠchappĂŠ de Ryan alors qu'il tendait une main pour saisir tendrement sa nuque. Du coin de l'Ĺil, Jenessa l'a vu se pencher lentement vers elle...... ...... ==== En public, elle ĂŠtait la secrĂŠtaire de direction du PDG. En privĂŠ, elle ĂŠtait l'ĂŠpouse qu'il n'avait jamais officiellement reconnue. Lorsqu'elle a appris qu'elle ĂŠtait enceinte, Jenessa ĂŠtait folle de joie. Mais cette joie a cĂŠdĂŠ la place Ă la peur lorsque son mari, Ryan, a ravivĂŠ la flamme avec son premier amour. Le cĹur lourd, elle a choisi de le libĂŠrer et de partir, seulement pour ĂŞtre attrapĂŠ par Ryan... Que se passe-t-il ensuite? Le nombre de chapitres affichĂŠs est limitĂŠ. Appuyez sur le bouton ci-dessous pour installer notre application et lire les chapitres suivants. (AccĂŠder automatiquement Ă ce livre en ouvrant l'application) &3& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.kifflire.com/19382410-fb_contact-frr | Popular romance stories | https://www.facebook.com/100083149047490/ | 17,951 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.kifflire.com | IMAGE | https://fbweb.kifflire.com/19382410-fb_contact-frr25_2-0821-core1.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=331118&accid=930975401843871&exdata=CD166E913C0E18FA38E67EC7F697AE64BCADFC2A3B519897 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/472332120_805667801697560_9152049067891275458_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=jR_T6hS-pOoQ7kNvgFnnsfd&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AKCVKvG_F6WGHGCYsbpCTa2&oh=00_AYB_ns3ChTOaNty5wQLCWw6eurRN95Xmz1cM_lBZAuTxKw&oe=678B86B2 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Popular romance stories | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,056 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664182}' |
Yes | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
ăăăăŻăŞăăŻăăŚçĄćă§ăčŞăżăă ăăďź | éŤćŠĺŞĺăćŤćçă¨č¨şćăăăăăŽćĽă复ăŽä˝č¤ĺłťäťăŻăĺćăŽç¸ćăŽĺäžăŽä¸čŠąăăăŚăăă ... ç é˘ă§ăä¸ćć ćăć¸ăéĄă§č¨ăŁăăăĺŞĺăăăćčĄăćĺăăă°ăçĺçăŻ15%ăă30%ăŤăŞăăă ĺŞĺăŻăă°ăăŽă˛ăăç´°ăćă§ăă ăŁă¨ćĄăăăăéăăăĺ°ăăŞéĄăŤćˇąăé°ăă澎ăăšăŚăăă ăĺ 蟊ăăăćčĄăĺăăŞăăă°ăăŠăŽăăăçăăăăăŽďźă ăĺĺš´ăă1ĺš´ăăăăă ĺŞĺăŻĺăăă ăŁă¨ĺăżăăăăăŁă¨č¨čăĺăĺşăăăăĺ 蟊ăăăŽăă¨ăŻç§ĺŻăŤăăŚăĄăăă ăă厜ćăĺżé ăăăăăŞăăŽăă éŤćŠĺŽśăŻăă§ăŤç ´çŁăăŚăăăĺŞĺăŻçśčŚŞăŽĺťç貝ă塼é˘ăăă ăă§ă粞ä¸ćŻă ăŁăă ć ćăŻčŤŚăăăăăŤč¨ăŁăăăĺŁĺ¤ăăŞăăăă§ăăçľĺŠăăŚăăă¨čăăăćŚéŁăăââă ăăçśăăăŽăă¨ăŻăéĄăăăăăčĄăăŞăă¨ăăĺŞĺăŻĺ¤ŤăŽčŠąéĄăéżăăăăăŤăćŠă ăŤăăŽĺ ´ăçŤăĄĺťăŁăă çśčŚŞăŽć˛ťçăĺ§ăžăŁăŚăăăŽ2ĺš´éă复ă§ăăä˝č¤ĺłťäťăŻä¸ĺşŚăĺ§żăčŚăăăă¨ăăŞăăŁăă彟弳ăĺăăŚéčĄäşşăŤç é˘ă¸éă°ăăćă§ăăăă ă ăă¤ăŚăŻĺ˝źăĺŞĺă大ĺăŤăăŚăăăă ăăĺćăŽç¸ćă§ăăćžćŹéçžăĺŚĺ¨ ăăçść ă§ĺ¸°ĺ˝ăăŚăăăăăšăŚăĺ¤ăăŁăă ĺŞĺăăă¤ăŚĺŚĺ¨ ăăŚăăăă¨ăăăŁăăăăćĽăćšă§ćžćŹéçžă¨ă¨ăăŤč˝ć°´ăăćăĺż ćťăŤăăăăŞăăă彟ăéçžăŤĺăăŁăŚćłłăă§ăăĺ§żăčŚăă ĺžăéçžăŻçĄäşăŤĺăŠăăçŁăă ăă§ăĺŞĺăŻćŻčŚŞăŤăŞăćŠäźă弪ăăăă 7ćĽĺžăĺłťäťăŻé˘ĺŠăćąăăăă彟弳ăŻćĺŚăăă ă ăăç ć°ăŽăă¨ăçĽăŁăäťă彟弳ăŻéăăćă§ĺ˝źăŽéťčŠąăăăăă 3ĺçŽăŽăłăźăŤă§ă¤ăŞăăă¨ă彟ăŽĺˇăă声ăčăăăŚăăăăé˘ĺŠäťĽĺ¤ăŽç¨äťśăŞăăăĺăŤäźăć°ăŻăŞăăă ĺŞĺăŻćśăăăăăçăŽčŠąăĺăĺşăăă¨ăă§ăăŞăăŁăăăăă¨éťčŠąăŽĺăăăăéçžăŽĺٰăčăăăŚăăăăĺłťäťĺăăăăă辤ăĄăăăŽĺŽćć¤ćťăăă ăăŽçŹéăăăăăŚăăćśăä¸ć°ăŤćş˘ăĺşăăăăăšăŚăçľăăăăćăćĽăăŽă ă ĺŞĺăŻăéăă声ă§ăçľăĺşăăăăŤă˝ă¤ăă¨ĺăăăăĺłťäťâŚâŚăăăé˘ĺŠăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻä¸çŹăéŠăăăăă ăŁăăăĺˇçŹăăŚč¨ăŁăăăĺŞĺăäťĺşŚăŻăŠăăŞćă使ăă¤ăăă ďźă ă厜ă§ĺž ăŁăŚăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻăéťčŠąăçŞçśĺăăăĺžăĺçśă¨ăšăăăčŚă¤ăăŚăăă ä¸ĺš´éćĺŚăçśăăŚăăĺŞĺăăăŞăäťćĽăŤĺćăăăŽă ăăďź ĺ˝źĺĽłăŤäźăăŤčĄăăă¨ăćąşăăă ăĺłťäťăăŠăăŤčĄăăŽăďźăéçžăĺăŠăăćąăăŞăăčż˝ăăăăŚăăă ăăăă彟ăŻä˝ăč¨ăăçŤăĄĺťăŁăăăăŽçŹéăéçžăŽĺŞăă襨ć ăŻăżăăżăăăĄăŤćăăăăťăŠćăăŞăŁăă ăăŽĺĽłâŚâŚăžăä˝ăäťćăăŚăăăăďź çé˘ăŽăă˘ăéăăă¨ăăĺŞĺăŻăăźăăŤăŽăă°ăŤçŤăŁăŚăăăšăźăăçăčăéŤăçˇć§ăčŚăăć´ăŁăéĄçŤăĄăŻć°ˇăŽăăăŤĺˇăăăăăŽćăçłăŤăŻĺŞĺă¸ăŽčť˝čă澎ăăă§ăăă ăăŠăăŤčĄăŁăŚăăă ďźăĺłťäťăĺˇăăĺ°ăăă ăăăăŞăă¨ăŻăă¤ăăć°ăŤăăăŽďźă ăé˘ĺŠĺąăŤăľă¤ăłăăŚăăăĺż čŚăăăăă ăăŽč¨čăŻéăéăŽăăăŤĺ˝źĺĽłăŽĺżăĺşăăă濥ăăä˝ăĺźăăăăŞăăă彟弳ăŻăŤăăłăăć¸éĄăéăăŤĺăĺşăăă ăĺżé ăăĺż čŚăăŞăăăăăľă¤ăłć¸ăżă ăă 彟弳ăć¸éĄăăăźăăŤăŽä¸ăŤç˝Žăăă¨ăăĺłťäťăŻăé˘ĺŠăă¨ăăäşćĺăăăăťăŠăžă§ăŤä¸ć忍ăŤćăăăă¨ăŻăŞăăŁăăĺŞĺăĺŻä¸čŚćąăăăŽăŻă2ĺĺăŽć °čŹćă ăŁăă ăăŠăăăŚćĽăŤĺćăăăŽăă¨ćăŁăăăçľĺąéăŽăăăăă彟ăŽéĄăĺ˛çŹă澎ăăšăă ăă¤ăŚăŞăăčŞĺăĺźčˇăăăăăăăŞăăă§ăăäťĺ˝źĺĽłăŻăă éăăŤč¨ăŁăăăćŹćĽăŞăăä˝č¤ăăăŽčłçŁăŽĺĺăčŤćąăă樊ĺŠăăăăăă§ăăç§ăŻ2ĺĺăăčŚćąăăŞăăŁăăăăă§ăăăžă ć ăăăăăŚăă¤ăăăăă ĺłťäťăŻä¸ćŠĺăŤé˛ăżăéˇă役ăĺŞĺăčŚăŁăă彟ăŻĺ˝źĺĽłăŽéĄăç´°éˇăćă§ć´ăżăĺˇăă声ă§č¨ăŁăăăäťăä˝ăŚĺźăă ďźă ăä˝č¤ăăăăăăăŽĺźăłćšăĺŤăŞăăĺ 复ă¨ĺźăłç´ăăŚăăăăăăăăăć¸éĄăŤăľă¤ăłăăŚĺ¸°ăŁăŚăăăŁăŚăăďźă 彟ăŻä¸ć忍ăăăŞéĄăăăăăăăăŻäżşăŽĺŽśă ăĺşăŚčĄăă¨č¨ă樊ĺŠăŻăĺăŤăŻăăăăăă ĺŞĺăŻçŽčăăŤĺžŽçŹăżăč¨ăŁăăă確ăăŤăăăŽć¨ŠĺŠăŻăŞăăăă§ăăĺŽĺżăăŚăä˝č¤ăăăé˘ĺŠč¨źćć¸ăĺăĺăŁăăăăăăŤĺşăŚčĄăăă ăžăă彟ăŽćăćŻăćăăĺˇăăçŽă§ĺ˝źăčŚă¤ăăăăććĽăŽć9ćăĺ¸ĺ˝šćă§ć¸éĄăćăŁăŚăăŚăă ăăăă çżćăćĽăŽĺşĺăŤăŻĺŞĺăŻĺşçşăăăă¨ăăćăç é˘ăăéťčŠąăăăăŁăŚăăăăéŤćŠăăăăçśăăăĺżčçşä˝ă辡ăăăžăăăă ăăăŁďźăăĺăăăžăďźă ç é˘ăŤĺ°çăăă¨ăćčĄăŻăžă çśăăŚăăă äťăĺŻä¸ăŽĺ¸ćăŻçśăĺĽĺşˇă§çăçśăăăă¨ă ăă ăŁăă çčˇĺ¸ŤăćčĄč˛ťç¨ăŽčŤćąć¸ăć渥ăăŚăăăçˇéĄăŻ300ä¸ĺ䝼ä¸ă ă§ăă䝼ĺćŻćăŁăĺ Ľé˘č˛ťă§ćŽéăŻăăŁăăŽ10ä¸ĺăăŠăăăŚăčśłăăŞăăŁăă äťćšăŞăăĺłťäťăŤéťčŠąăăăăă ĺˇăă声ăčăăăăăăŠăă ďźăă30ĺĺž ăŁăŚăăăă ăćĽăŞăă¨ăăăŁăŚââă ăĺŞĺăăăă§ăăăăăďźăĺłťäťăéźťă§çŹăăăăŠăăăžăĺăă¤ăăŚăăăă ăăďźă ăăăŞďź ăĺăăăŞăďźçśăĺżčçşä˝ă辡ăăăŚćčĄăĺż čŚăŞăŽďźââă ăăăă§ăćťăă ăŽăďźăĺłťäťăéŽăŁăă ăăŽč¨čăŤăĺŞĺăŻčłăçăŁăăăăăŞč¨ăćšăăäşşăăăăŽăďź ăăăăďźĺłťäťăćčĄč˛ťă300ä¸ĺ䝼ä¸ăăăăŽăă ăăć °čŹćăĺ ăŤćŻăčžźăă§ăăăŞăďźĺż ăé˘ĺŠăăăăďźă ăĺŞĺăäżşă誰ăăăĺăŽçśčŚŞăŽćťăćăă§ăăăă¨ăçč§ŁăăŚăăăăŞăéă渥ăăŽăŻăăă ăăăă§ăćçśăăçľăăŁăĺžăŤă ăă ăăă ăč¨ăă¨ăéťčŠąăŻĺăăăă ĺŞĺăŽéĄăŤăŻĺ°ćă澎ăăă§ăăăăă¤ăŚĺ˝źăŻçśăŤĺŻžăăŚćŹćăćăŁăŚăăăŻăă ăŁăăăăăăäťăŽĺ˝źăŽĺٰăŤăŻćŹć°ăŽćăăżă杲ăă§ăăă ăŞăă ďź 2ĺš´ĺăŽéŤćŠĺŽśăŽç ´çŁă¨çľăłă¤ăăŚčăăă¨ăĺśçśăŽĺşćĽäşă¨ăŻćăăŞăăŞăŁăŚăăă ăăăăăăŚăĺłťäťăčŁă§ä˝ăăäťćăăăŽă ăăăăăĺŽĺŽśăŻä¸ä˝ăŠăăăŁăŚĺ˝źăćăăăŚăăžăŁăăŽă ăăďź äťăčăčžźăä˝čŁăăŞăăçśăŽć˛ťç貝ăä˝ă¨ăăăăŽăćĺŞĺ ă ăŁăă ćčĄĺޤăŽćăéăăăăĺ çďźă ăéŤćŠăăăăçść§ăŻăŞăă¨ăćăĄăăăăžăăăă ĺŞĺăŻăăăăč¸ăćŤă§ä¸ăăăă äťčˇäşşăŤçśăäťťăăĺ¸ĺ˝šćăŤćĽăă ăăĺłťäťăŻăŠăăŤăăŞăăŁăă çŚăŚéťčŠąăăăăăăĺ¸ĺ˝šćăŤçăăăăăŠăăŤăăăŽďźă ăäşĺ厤ă ăă ăäťăăé˘ĺŠćçśăăć¸ăžăăŤćĽăŚăăăŞăďźă ĺłťäťăŻčăçŹăŁăŚč¨ăŁăăăć°ĺĺăŽĺĽç´ă¨ăĺăăŠăŁăĄă大äşă ă¨ćăďźă ăçľăăăžă§ĺž ă¤ăăâŚâŚĺłťäťăăéĄăăäťçśăŻăéăĺż čŚăŞăŽăă ăăăćťăă ăăčŹĺźäťŁăĺşăăŚăăăăăăăă ăč¨ăă¨ă彟ăŻéťčŠąăĺăŁăă ĺăłéťčŠąăăăăăăăă§ăŤéťćşăĺăăăă ĺŞĺăŻćŻă芰ăžăăăăŞćčŚăŤčĽ˛ăăăă 彟弳ăŻăăŁă¨ăăéăŤĺ ¨ăŚă夹ăŁăŚăăžăŁăă äťăĺŞĺăćăŁăŚăăĺŻä¸ăŽäžĄĺ¤ăăăăŽăŻăçľĺŠć蟪ă ăă ăŁăă 彟弳ăŻć蟪ăĺ¤ăăéŤç´ĺŽéŁžĺşăŤčśłăč¸ăżĺ Ľăăă ăă厢ć§ăčłźĺ ĽćăŽé ĺć¸ă¨č¨źćć¸ăŻăćăĄă§ăăďźă ăăŻăăăĺŞĺăŻćĽăă§ć¸éĄă塎ăĺşăăă ăăăăă¨ăăăăăžăăć蟪ăŻć¤ćťăŤĺşăĺż čŚăăăăŽă§ăććĽăžăăéŁçľĄăăăŚăăă ăăžăăăă ĺŞĺăŻĺ迍ăă声ă§č¨ăŁăăăćĽăă§ăăăă§ăăäťćĽä¸ăŤăéĄăăăžăăă ăăŻăăăĺşĺĄăć蟪ăćăĄĺťăăă¨ăăăăŽćăăăç˝ăăŚçšç´°ăŞćăć蟪ăąăźăšăćźăăăă ăăăŽć蟪ăă¨ăŚăç´ ćľăăç§ă財ăăăă éĄăä¸ăăĺŞĺăŽçŽăŤéŁăłčžźăă§ăăăŽăŻă彟弳ăăăŽä¸ă§ćăćăă§ăăäşşçŠââćžćŹéçžă ăŁă | LEARN_MORE | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&ut | 弳ăŽĺăčŞăżăăĺ°čŞŹă大çšé | https://www.facebook.com/61559954921868/ | 131 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | heplk.com | IMAGE | https://heplk.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13074&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/472710711_1123340239378718_7754655980309877883_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=mSaSS1yw_Q8Q7kNvgHZrOLe&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AKCVKvG_F6WGHGCYsbpCTa2&oh=00_AYCLTFYiZuhhb7nLTDn7NrgCRWbX0kEuo-fT8rqH_jxXzQ&oe=678B8A54 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | 弳ăŽĺăčŞăżăăĺ°čŞŹă大çšé | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,134 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664088}' |
No | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
đHOT! HOT!Do not read in publicďźđ | My husband and mate, Elijah, is the Alpha of one of the most powerful packs in Fenrisa, the Iron Claw Pack. I am his wife and his mate. One would think that due to being fated, our relationship would be a good one. But thatâs far from the truth. The truth is, I am his second chance mate. âVerena, I want to reject our bond and get separated,â Elijahâs voice doesn't hold an ounce of emotion as he sits across from me in the dim living room. I'd been waiting for him to celebrate our third wedding anniversary together. But when he arrived, there was this coldness about him. I figured he was just tired from work, but then he asked me to sit down and dropped a bombshell on me. "Why?" I blink in disbelief. He must be joking, right? But the intensity of his gaze chips away at my doubt, replacing it with a growing sense of worry. I know the reason. The one I've feared the most for so long. His mate has returned to the pack. Elijahâs first mate had left him just before the mating ceremony. The reason was unknown, but everyone assumed that she didnât want a relationship with her mate and loved someone else. On the same day of their separation, Elijah found me and realized that I am his second chance mate. Second chance mates are rare, and it can be called a miracle that the Goddess gives Elijah a second chance in love by mating us. He hasnât rejected his first mate, but one can find a second mate irrespective of rejecting their first mate. It's complicated and goes against the laws of the mate bond. Yet it's a blessing to the ones whose first mate dies or leaves them. Elijah sighs, âYou know about Nixie. She wants to be back with me.â I clench my fist. âAnd you want to get back with her?â My lips quiver, and I struggle to stop my body from trembling, but it's futile. Despite being Elijahâs second chance, heâs my first. My first mate, the only love of my life. No matter who your second chance is, the bond with the first mate is stronger, like the first love that you canât move on from. Elijah feels the same towards Nixie, I know, but can I simply accept it? His face remains aloof, âNixie needs me, Verena. She is my mate and my wolf needs her.â His first mate returned a week ago, claiming that she was kidnapped by our enemy pack and taken hostage for three years. The pack that captured her was destroyed due to a pack war, and the hostages were released. Thatâs how Nixie escaped and returned to our pack. "I canât have two mates at the same time. Having you both is putting a lot of pressure and weakening my wolf. Over time, itâll get worse. So, Iâll have to reject one," he adds in a calm voice, while a storm is rising in my chest. "And you choose her," I reply, tears brimming in my eyes. I knew that Elijah hadnât moved on from his first mate when I entered his life. But I had believed that I could heal him and show him that I can love him more. I did everything in my power to make him happy when we got married. Yet, sheâs the one he chooses. What about us? The relationship we built for all these years, does it mean nothing to him? When I walked into his life, he was emotionally unavailable and rude to me. But I stayed patient and he gradually started to warm up to me. Since then we had worked together on everything and he promised to stay beside me forever. I know that I wonât be able to bear him a healthy child because I did not shift after I turned eighteen and it's been five years since I have been wolf-less. But I felt the mate bond when I saw Elijah at the Mating Ball. He also agreed to marry me because his pack needed a Luna and it was better to have a second chance mate than have no mate at all. âYou said you'd never leave me. You promised me,â I remind him. âHow can you break it because of someone who left you years ago?â His icy presence sends a chill through the room. "Rena, watch your words. Remember who you're speaking to," he warns, his tone sharp like a blade. "And do you expect me to overlook the fact that you intentionally drove Nixie away because you wanted to be with me?" My brows raise, âWhat are you talking about?â He stands from the couch, âYou think I donât know? Nixie returned to this pack just one year after our marriage and wanted to meet me. But you met her first and threatened her to not come close to me and disappear from the pack.â A shadow falls on his chiseled face, making him look deadly and dangerous. I have always admired his ruthless side, especially when he makes sure to punish anyone who tries to hurt me. But today, heâs giving me this look as if heâs disgusted by me. âBecause of you, Nixie could not contact me and tell me what happened to her. I couldnât be there for her when she needed me. Just because of you.â He accuses me, and I feel like I have been stabbed in the chest. âI did not!â I say and he tilts his head as if he did not expect that response from me. As much as I want Elijah all to myself, I know that he feels empty without Nixie. So I would have accepted them being together, just for the sake of Elijahâs happiness. He raises a brow, âSo you are not going to admit it?â âAdmit what? I have no idea what you are talking about.â I protest. "Fine, I'll call him then," Elijah's obsidian eyes glaze over as he connects through the mind-link. Seconds later, the door swings open and Joshua walks inside. âWhatâs the matter?â He asks as he looks at both of us. He is Elijahâs Beta. âRena denies that she had not tried to kick Nixie out of the pack when she returned two years ago. Is that true?â I look at Joshua expectantly. He will tell Elijah the truth. I relax a little, waiting for the truth to come out. But why do I have this bad feeling? âNo, I saw her two years ago with the Luna,â Joshua replies calmly, with a subtle smile on his face. âThe Luna did threaten her and tell her to leave the pack.â What?! âJoshua, what the hell are you saying?! I didn't even meet Nixie!â I rise from my seat in shock and look at him in disbelief. âKeep your voice low, Rena. Joshua is saying what he saw and I am surprised that you believed heâd lie for you. After all, heâs the one who showed me pictures of your encounter with my mate.â Elijah throws the pictures on the table and it feels like someone has pulled the rug off my feet. These are from a different time. They are manipulated. I look at the Beta who gives me a smirk. He betrayed me. I thought we were good friends but⌠My shoulders slump as I look at the floor. This canât be happening. âDo you have any evidence that the Beta is lying?â Elijah asks. I donât have an answer. My head spins, trying to process everything that has happened. âNo,â I whisper. If I had known that heâll betray me like this, I would have been more cautious. But why would he do this? For a few minutes, silence hangs heavy in the air until Elijah gently grasps my chin, coaxing me to meet his gaze. His inky black hair falls messily across his face, reminding me of its softness when I touched it before. âIt's over, Rena. You knew how much I loved Nixie, yet you pushed her away from me. Then you pretended to love me when all you wanted was the power and wealth that comes with being my wife. I canât let any of this slip away.â he says, his voice gentle but deep and chilling. Pretend to love him? After all these years, he thinks it was an act. I know I donât have any evidence to prove my innocence, but wonât he try to believe me for once? I canât help but wonder if he would have believed Nixie if she was in my shoes. He would have probably forgiven her, because mates tend to be possessive of their partners. But he wonât treat me like that, because according to him, I am just his second chance. I am nothing compared to his first true mate, his first love. Tears glisten in my eyes as pain grips my heart. "Elijah, I mean it. I don't care about the position. I just want you." He growls, baring his canines and his eyes flash, âI had enough. You should be grateful that I am not imprisoning you for doing something like this. So if you donât want to live in the cells, I advise you to accept the divorce and the rejection.â He lets go of my chin and retrieves the divorce agreement. He slaps it onto the coffee table, making me flinch. "Sign it.â I stare at the papers with a bleeding heart. All the good memories I had with him flash in my head. What did all of those moments mean? Was it a lie when he said that I make him smile? That I am special to him? That our bond is no lesser than a first mate bond? I slowly bend forward, and grab the pen. I sign the paper while holding back my tears.âHere, it's done,â I whisper while holding the divorce agreement. For a brief moment, the iciness in his gaze melts, replaced by shock and hurt. But he swiftly regains his composure and accepts the paper from me. A sad smile curves my lips. So he would have gotten separated from me anyway. It did not matter what I did, he just needed a reason to reject me and have his mate back. âWhen is the rejection ceremony going to take place?â I ask while looking down at my trembling arms. If I see his face, Iâm afraid Iâll break down completely. âTomorrow. I expect you to be present at the training ground at eight in the morning. Once the rejection is over, you can stay at the packhouse. Though Iâd prefer if you donât come close to my mate. I donât want you to cause a scene.â he replied and it hurts how he calls Nixie âmy mateâ. I rise from my seat and turn around, âDonât worry, you wonât find me anywhere near you or Nixie after the rejection is over. Thatâll be my gift to you. Happy Marriage Anniversary, Alpha Elijah.â Chapter 2 : Her, Nixie Verena It's alright. Things will get better. Elijah will change his mind, after all he loves meâ- My trembling hand freezes halfway as I reach for the plate on the dining table. Tear droplets splatter on the polished darkwood, and the sight of our signatures on the divorce agreement brings me crashing back to reality. We're divorced, and tomorrow he will reject me. Not being able to pretend anymore, I break down into sobs. My fingers curl on the edge of the table while I look at the hardwood floor with tears streaming down my eyes. He really divorced me. My relationship with Elijah hasnât been a bed of roses. When we married, he was cold and distant. But I started to witness the softer, emotional side of him that he tried to hide from the rest of the world. I made his pain my own, and tried my best to keep him happy. He was gradually warming up to me. But then Nixie returned and he pushed me away like those years of our relationship meant nothing to him. My chest squeezes painfully at the thought of it. I just canât accept that he doesn't want me anymore. But the untouched food on the table, and the red velvet cake with Happy Third Marriage Anniversary written on it is a reminder that it's true. It took me almost four hours to bake this cake, in high hopes of seeing a smile on Elijahâs face when he returns. âAre you finished with your nonsense?â Maya, my maidâs voice, draws my attention to the door. She stands there with an annoyed expression, gesturing towards the wall. âUnlike you, I actually have work to do, like cleaning up this mess.â I wipe my face, and take a step back, âYes, go ahead.â My voice sounds dry. Maya rolls her eyes, her lips curl in disapproval as she walks over and eyes the table. âSuch a headache,â she mutters while shaking her head. Despite being Luna, I am not liked in the packhouse. It's because I am an orphan who did not shift. Even an omega has a wolf, so it makes me appear way beneath in rank. So the people donât approve of me as their Queen. Someone without a wolf canât lead a pack of wolves. Thatâs what I have always been told. I have learned to live with it because that is how I have always been treated. And forcing people to like me through fear of my position goes beyond my values, so I try to make up for my weakness by putting my best efforts. But Elijah has punished anyone who has tried to misbehave with me, always taking my side when things went down. He was very protective of me. Was. I wonder if he believes now Nixie will be a better Luna than me because of having a wolf. She comes from a family of Gammas, so she has a strong wolf and anyone will choose her over me. Rip! My body jolts at the sudden sound of something being torn off, and I notice Maya ruthlessly tearing the fairy lights and red balloons off the wall behind the table. With each delicate adornment being stripped away, I feel a prick in my chest. My friends Dory and Drake helped me set up the decorations last night, and we were so proud of it. Maya does not hold back on the food either, and I flinch at the way she just dumps the cake into the dustbin. I feel like that cake, dumped into trash. My head feels dizzy at the overwhelming emotions. I need a shower. I walk out of the dining hall, and my legs feel heavy for some reason. Now that I think about it, I've been feeling quite sick since this morning. My throat itches, I feel nauseous, and I've been unusually tired lately. Maybe it's because of Elijah. Not paying any attention to my surroundings, my hand subconsciously reaches to open the door to the bedroom. But the moment the door swings back, a pleasant musky scent hits my nose. Thereâs another scent with it that makes my nose crinkle. My body freezes in place when I notice Elijah sitting on the bed. With Nixie on his lap. With brown hair that brushes her shoulders in curls and a floral print mini skirt riding up her slender, milky white thighs, Nixie looks like any manâs wet dream. Compared to her, I look basic in my plain blue dress and straight midnight blue hair. They seem to be having a moment as her arms are wrapped around his neck, while his hand is on her slim waist. Elijah notices my presence, âRena,â he takes my name with his deep, velvety voice that tugs at my heart and lets go of Nixieâs waist. Nixie gets off his lap and stands beside him, fixing her skirt. âOh my Goddess, Rena. I-I didnât know you would be coming,â her pale skin turns red as if sheâs embarrassed. Even when I donât have a wolf, I can still feel the sting of their intimacy. My heart pounds painfully in my chest. âRena, why are you here?â Elijah asks, staring at me with his cold obsidian eyes. I canât tell what he is thinking. Chapter 3 : He, with Her Verena âIâŚumâŚâ the words feel stuck in my throat. My legs feel weak. I canât believe he started to get so intimate with her after a few hours of our divorce. If heâs this affectionate with her, then it means that he has already moved on. Though maybe he did not need to move on in the first place. âRena?â He takes my name again, and I regain my composure. I need to get a hold on myself. Heâs no longer my husband, and soon heâll reject me from the mate bond. So I shouldnât be feeling anything. âDid I interrupt something?â I ask, my gaze sliding to Nixie who stares at me with her big doe green eyes. Anyone would fall for the innocence those eyes portray, but I can see the malice behind it. Elijah narrows his gaze, and places a hand over his mouth. He does that when heâs curious, and annoyed. âYou did,â he replies sharply, and I'm struck by his words. âIââ âRena, you should remember that you need to ask for the Alphaâs permission before entering his room.â My lips part in shock, and my brows lift. âWhat?â âYou heard me. Still, Iâd let this go because we arenât officially rejected and you are my mate.â His voice puts me in an icy chokehold. Just a few hours, and our relationship has completely changed. Where is the man who waited for me every single night in bed to fall asleep together? Who is he? âWow, I did not know that it was your room now, Alpha. The same room we shared for three years,â I retort, crossing my arms. My eyes flit to the bed where he was sitting with Nixie on his lap. His jaw clenches at my words. âWe are divorced now. So isnât it obvious that we wonât be sharing the same room anymore?â He tilts his head, gauging my reaction. I smirk, âSure. I mean, you wonât like me barging into your âroomâ while you spend some quality time with your mate,â I emphasize the last word and my gaze shifts to Nixie. âRena, before you say something to insult Nixie, Iâll warn you. I have been lenient with you, but I wonât this time. So choose your words wisely.â He speaks in a low, commanding voice, reminding me of whoâs in charge. His words crush my soul. It's as if I am the problem in his life. âElijah, it's alright,â Nixie moves closer to him, and slides her hand over his shoulder. âI can understand that sheâs hurt so I am fine with it.â A growl leaves my lips as I stare at her hand placement. Elijah raises a brow, and I realize what I have done. Heâs still my mate, and it's not easy for me to watch someone else touch him, even if that person is his first mate. âIâI am sorry if I made you upset, Rena,â Nixie looks at me with quivering lips, âBut you have to understand that I love him and canât stay away from him.â Tears fill her eyes, and she starts to sob. âNixie, donât cry. It's not your fault,â Elijah gets up, and wraps an arm around her. My insides scream at that sight, but I donât let a word out of my mouth. I silently watch him comfort her when I am the one in need of comfort. âRena and I have come to a mutual agreement, so it's our decision.â I scowl. It was never my decision to get separated from him. Elijah looks at me with a pointed look, âYou did not tell me why you are here.â His voice is gentle as always, but I can tell that he does not want me here. He feels that I will sabotage his relationship with Nixie. My jaw trembles, âIt's nothing. I am sorry for interrupting whatever you both were doing,â I storm out of the door while the tears trickle down my eyes. The paintings and furniture on the hallway start to look unfamiliar as I rush past them. Why? Why do I have to go through this? My head starts to throb, and I stop in my steps. I feel dizzy. The nausea grows, crawling up my chest and through my blurry vision, I see two figures on the other side of the hall. They look concerned as they walk towards me. âLuna, are you alright?â I recognize the voice. It's Dory, âYou look no wellââ I donât hear the rest of her sentence as the air shifts, and I grace the floor. Shadows dance in my vision before everything turns dark. Beep. Beep. My eyes flutter open on hearing a sound, and I find myself in a hospital bed. A dull ache throbs in my head. âSheâs awake,â I feel Doryâs warm hand on my back as I slowly get up. She helps me sit. âThank Goddess!â Drake exclaims as he stands beside her. They are twins, and work for me in the pack. I groan, feeling the same throbbing sensation. âI passed out?â âYeah. We brought you to the hospital as soon as possible. Are you okay now?â Drake asks. I nod, âYeah.â The door opens, and a woman walks in wearing a white coat and holding a clipboard. "Oh, you're awake. That's good," she says with a smile as she approaches me. My gaze falls onto the tag on her coat. Dr. Shalini, Senior Gynaecologist. âIs it an infection?â I ask. Her smile widens, âNo, Luna. I have good news for you. I hope that the Alpha throws us a party after this.â she says and my frown deepens. My gaze shifts to Drake and Dory. Drake shrugs while Dory shakes her head. âI donât understand,â I say. âCongratulations, my Luna. You are going to be a mother.â she replies. Chapter 4 : A Baby? Verena The world seems to stop as I hear what she said. I amâŚcarrying a baby now? âWhat?â I gasp. The woman nods, her eyes glinting with excitement. âYes, Luna. I ran a USG scan, and it shows the pregnancy.â Dory shrieks, âOh my Goddess! That's wonderful news.â She grins at me, and hugs Drake, who is taken aback by her sisterâs excitement. The doctor looks at my confused expression and asks, âIs everything alright?â I stare at my lap. How can I be? Drake senses my confusion and turns to the doctor, âCan we have some time alone with her? Weâll call you if we need anything. Thank you for the news, doc.â âUm, alright,â she says hesitantly, giving me one last glance before walking out of the room. Dory senses the change in mood and asks me, âWhatâs wrong, Luna?â âI think I understand why she is confused,â Drake answers, and Dory looks at him. âWe all know that Luna does not have a wolf.â Doryâs brows shoot up in realization. âOh my, thatâs right. Then, how?â She looks at me, the colors of excitement on her face completely gone. A she-wolf who did not shift canât bear another male wolfâs child, let alone that of an Alphaâs child. Our genetics act like one of a normal human, and we are not compatible with carrying a shifterâs child. So how can I having a baby? âWe should get the report checked or tell them to run another test on you. The report can be wrong,â Drake says in a calm voice. He is always calm in these situations and looks at every problem through a logical perspective. As advised by Drake, I undergo another USG scan to confirm if the report is accurate or not. Dory insists that I get some rest, so I return to the packhouse after the test is over. She promises to bring me the test report, so I anxiously wait for her in one of my spare rooms. When the second test report arrives, my eyes stay glued to the report file, my hands trembling. Test resultâpositive. Sweet tears blur my vision. I canât believe this. âIt's really true, Luna. You are with child,â Dory remarks with a huge smile plastered on her face. My hand reaches to my belly. There is a life growing inside me. When I had not shifted after my 18th birthday, I had lost all hope of conceiving. Elijah was unhappy about my barren state, and it was another reason for him to act cold towards me in the initial stages of our marriage. An Alpha needs an heir, and I was incapable of providing one. âBut how is this possible? I never shifted,â I mutter. âI have a theory in my mind,â Dory replies as she stands before me with her hands crossed. I look up from the file, and a thoughtful look darkens her eyes, âThere have been a few cases where the shifter did not transform at the right age because their wolf was still in a developmental phase.â I raise a brow, âDevelopmental phase?â She hums, âMost wolves start to develop in our bodies from the time of our birth. The average age for any healthy transformation is from eighteen to nineteen. Usually, after that time, no shifter ever transforms, meaning their wolf could not grow properly because of the lack of strength in the personâs body. But there was this one case study in the Moonlight Pack where the Alpha got his wolf at the age of twenty-six. Rumor has it that his predecessors also got their wolves late.â âSo it's in the bloodline?â I ask, rubbing my belly, âIsnât the Moonlight Pack Alpha a powerful one who has magical powers?â She nods, âThatâs what everyone says. But recently, no one has seen the Alpha around, and some say that it's just baseless rumors. If he truly had magical powers, then he would have shown them, but thereâs no incident as such. Heâs been a mystery for the last ten years.â I hum in agreement. It's hard to tell what my condition is, but I donât care. If Elijah learns about this, I am sure heâll annul the divorce. He canât reject me after knowing that I have his baby. It will put the childâs life at risk. I need to tell him. He has to change his mind after this. He canât get separated from me if he knows that I am carrying his future heir. I get up from the bed and tell Dory, âIâll show this to the Alpha.â Not wasting another second, I am rushing out of the guestroom. Thank Selene! She has blessed me with a child. She believes that Elijah and I are meant to be together. A smile curves my lips. The moment I reach his office, I knock the door twice with my knuckles while excitement bubbles through me. I hear his deep voice through the door, âCome in.â I step in, feeling a little nervous as I find him sitting on his office chair, wearing his blue-light glasses with a white rim. They frame his obsidian eyes that scrutinize me. He looks so handsome in them. But then my gaze falls on Nixie, whose arm rests on his shoulder. She is way too close to him, and frowns when she notices me. It's not hard to see the malicious look in her eyes. Once I settle things with Elijah, Iâll make sure she never gets a chance to come close to him. âWhat brings you here, Rena?â Elijah asks, shifting his gaze to his computer screen. I am about to respond when he says, âI hope it's not ânothingâ like last time. You should know that I am a busy person, and my time has value." He speaks in a frosty demeanor that reminds me of winter. âI am carrying your baby, Elijah,â I say, hoping that the news will shock him. He has always been looking forward to having an heir. Now his wish has come true. Chapter 5: Will He Be Back? Verena His gaze lifts from the display screen and darkens with disappointment, âIs this your new trick to get me back?â he retorts, and the corner of Nixieâs lips curls into a smirk. I blink in confusion. Trick? âWhyâwhy would I trick you with something like this?â His jaw clenches, and the air turns cold with his icy gaze, âYou tell me, Rena. You want me to believe that without having a wolf, you can carry the child of an Alpha?â I flinch at his words. I am not proud of my condition. But it's out of my control. âI know it's hard to believe. I did not believe it either. Thatâs why I ran two tests to confirm the report. I am really carrying a baby.â I take a step towards his desk and hand him the file. He flips through it, his eyes going over the report. Nixie leans in to also check, and her face turns pale. It makes me a little happy. This child will be the one to save our relationship and this pack. âI get it now,â he says, staring at the table in thought, and I breathe in relief. âYou went to Shadow Den after the divorce for this reason. To create a fake pregnancy report.â He adds, and suddenly it feels like I have been punched in the gut. âWhat?! What are you talking about?â I ask, my eyes wide in horror. Shadow Den is a shady place at the borders of the pack where all kinds of illegal activities take place, including creating fake documents. A dignified lady will never step into that place because it reeks of crime and rogue trafficking. âI told my men to keep an eye on you, and they reported that you went to Shadow Den. At first, I couldnât believe it and punished them for lying to me. But now it seems that they were telling me the truth.â The look Elijah gives me completely shatters my soul. It feels like the respect he had for me is broken now. I shake my head frantically, âNo! I did not go there, Elijah. Please trust me!â He scoffs, his eyes swirling with hurt. âHow can I trust you when you are doing things behind my back? You know how much I have desired a child. It pains me to think you have gone this far.â âThatâs not true. I will never do something like this, you know that,â The corner of my eyes prick. How can he believe that I will fake childbirth? âI can prove myself this time. Call the hospital and ask if I had done a test there or not.â I raise my voice, holding my ground as much as I can. Elijah dials the number on his phone. He puts it on the loudspeaker and places it on the desk for me to hear. With each ring, my heart beats with anticipation. This has to work. The clinic keeps records of their patients. âLarsen's Clinic speaking. How may I help you, Alpha?â The female receptionistâs voice comes from the receiving end. Elijah places his hands on the desk and asks, âIs there any record of my wife Verena Donovan getting a USG test done today at your clinic?â âGive me a second please, Alpha,â the receptionist answers politely. Patient records are confidential, but since it's the Alpha asking for information, the hospital has to obey his orders. I fidget, waiting for her to confirm it. Each second feels like an hour, making me grow nervous. Her voice finally comes through, âThereâs no record of her checking in our clinic today, Alpha.â My heart drops, and for a second I forget how to breathe. No, this canât be possible. I was there. They saw me. Then, why? Elijah hangs up the phone. Nixieâs eyes glint with victory as she stares at me. The walls around the office feel like they are closing in on me. Why did the clinic lie? Is someone else behind this? My gaze shifts to Nixie, who has a smug look on her face. It is strange how she has been so silent and did not try to stop me from showing the reports. He sighs and takes off his glasses. âRena, look. Your excuses are not going to work on me. This rejection is going to happen because as an Alpha, I have to be with my rightful mate.â He rises from the chair and approaches me. Standing close to me, he adds âAnd I am letting you stay here. I wonât banish you from the pack, so you donât have to use these cheap tricks.â Cheap tricks? My hand goes to my belly. The man I have spent my life with for three years did not try to believe me for once. This proves that he never trusted me in all these years, and I thought that we had a good relationshipâone that was built out of mutual love and respect. It was all in my head. âThis is the extent of my kindness, Rena,â Elijah adds, âDonât test my patience any further.â I donât need his kindness. The only thing I wanted from him was to take my side, to have faith in me. But he pushed it all away. I decide to leave silently and walk towards the door. When I grab the handle with my shaking hand, his voice stops me. âRena.â I look over my shoulder and find him staring at me. There is something in his gaze. âI hope you remember the time of the rejection ceremony tomorrow. Donât try to bail on me because then Iâll have to force you to join me at the training grounds.â My chest tightens at the lack of empathy in his voice. âI wonât,â I hold back the tears that threaten to fall by clenching the doorknob tightly. He wants to get rid of me so badly. But I am worried about my child. I can only pray to have the strength to protect my baby from his rejection. Chapter 6 : Loveâs Not Enough Verena âSo, when is the Alpha throwing us a party?â Dory asks as she walks into my room with a cheerful smile. She does not know. The only thing she knows is that I went to Elijah to tell him the good news. âYou definitely have to tell me the names you are deciding on, especially if it's a girl. I donât want our princess to have a terrible name like mine. Also Iââ âWe are going to have a rejection ceremony today,â I say with a grim expression. Dory blinks a few times, âWhat? Thatâs such a bad joke.â My lips curve in a sad smile while I sit on the armchair, âIt's not.â The girlâs smile drops, âNo, thatâs not possible.â My gaze dips to the jar sheâs holding in her hand, âDid you bring the herbs I asked you to?â Her brows pucker, âYeah, I did. But the herbs you asked for are used to protect an unborn from any strong supernatural forces. Why would you ask for something likeââ her lips stop moving as her eyes light up with realization. There are certain herbs that protect an unborn child in the womb of a mother who gets rejected from her mate. I told her to bring one of those so that no harm comes to my baby. She stays still for a few seconds, âWhat? Iâ Are you really getting rejected?â I answer her with my silence. She stands still, as if processing everything. âThe Alpha...heâs behind this, isnât he?â she grits her teeth. âI should have known it. Something felt off about you staying in this room, and looking so pale.â She clenches her fist. I slowly rise from my armchair, âDory, calm down.â âNo for this case!â she slams the jar into the bedside, and stomps out of the room. Crap! I run up to her. Sheâs going to argue with Elijah. Stepping out of the room, I get hold of her wrist, and stop her, âStop! Donât do it.â She whips her head at me, rage burning like coal in her eyes, âLuna, I respect you. But I canât accept this. How can he do this to you? Iâll go and knock some sense into him!â âNo, no, no.â I pull her back. She is acting like a dog who has gone feral, and needs to be kept on a leash. Most of the time she is calm and rational. But when it comes to the people she cares for, she becomes hot-headed and does something regretful. If she talks back to Elijah, she can be put into the cells or even banished. âCalm down. This decision is mutual,â I say, and she freezes. She turns to me with a face as if lightning has struck her. âWhat about the child? How can you get separated when the future heir of this pack is growing inside you?â She points at my belly and I place my palm on it. Despite what the clinic said, I believe that a life is growing inside me. I can feel it in my bones. But I donât want to tell Dory everything. She does not need to be involved in my problems. "It's because of the new girl who joined the pack, isnât it?â Dory asks suddenly, and I jerk my head up at her, my heart skipping a beat. I did not expect her to catch on to it so quickly. She notices my face, âYou donât need to worry about her, Luna. Iâll teach her a lesson that sheâll run out of the borders of this pack and never look back,â she says with determination. I sigh. This girl has no sense of danger. âYouâll do nothing like that. Promise me.â She frowns, âButââ âI said what I said. Donât argue with your Luna,â I will be ex-Luna soon but there is time left for the rejection ceremony. So I will use my authority to make sure Dory does not put herself in danger. Her shoulders sag, and she reluctantly nods. âBut why are you not doing anything? Will you let another girl just take everything from you?â Her words prick me. I did try, but when Elijah wants me to step out of his life, then there is nothing I can do. Even our child could not save our relationship because he does not even believe in its existence. âIt's pointless. Also, it's better to end things. Our marriage was like an agreement and since he has no use for me now, the agreement has ended.â It was a mistake. If I had known that I would be treated like this after the return of his fated mate, I would have never agreed to this marriage. Second chance mates after all areâŚsecond choice, not first. âBut LunaâŚâ She steps closer to me, her brown eyes staring at me, âYou love him, more than your own life. I know you.â Her words squeeze my chest tightly and warm tears cover my vision. She has seen how much dedicated I have been to Elijah. I blink to push my tears back, and amidst the silence of the gloomy morning my words come out like a sad symphony, âMy love is not enough.â A tear slips down my left eye. Dory's eyes glisten with pain as she wraps her arms around me in a gentle embrace. The warmth of her act stirs something inside me, and I break down into sobs. Now that she's here, I realize how much I needed someone's presence to share my sorrow. With no parents or many friends whom I can trust to open up to, given my focus on work and Elijah, her presence feels like a cool shade after hours of walking in scorching heat. "I am so sorry this is happening to you. If the Alpha can't see how much you have sacrificed for him, then he does not deserve you!" she cries, and I hug her tighter. It brings me some relief knowing that there's someone for me. "Don't worry sweetheart, it's okay. I can make it." I pat Dory on the back. "Later I'll go to Elijah's room and get my stuff back, they must not want to see me in this house, and neither do I.â Chapter 7: Shattered Expectations An hour later, I step inside Elijahâs bedroom to get all my stuff. The walls of the room make me suffocated as it reminds me of the times we have spent here. Brushing those thoughts away, I focus on my task at hand. There is no point in staying in this packhouse so Iâll pack my things and leave. The money I have saved from my stock investments will get me to stay for six months in a five-star hotel. I will use that time to find a job. Since I have always been focused on my duties as the Luna of this pack, I never got the time to pursue anything else, especially my dream to open a bakery. Now that I no longer have any duties towards the pack, I can focus on my dream and have a bakery shop of my own. Feeling a little energetic from the idea, I start to pull out all my accessories from the drawer when my eyes fall on a photo frame. Bright blue sky, palm trees and sand fill the background before which stands a couple smiling at me. The ladyâs cheeks are pink, and the shine in her eyes is unavoidable as her man has his arm wrapped around her waist. âHaha! You canât catch me!â I scream as I run across the sand, the warmth of the sun on my skin, and the cool breeze tangling my hair. Elijah has a challenging look on his face as he chases me, but thereâs a subtle smile on his handsome sun-kissed face. Before I know it, his strong arms grab me from behind, âLooks like I won,â I gasp as he gently lifts me off my feet, my heart fluttering in my chest. With a playful smile, he swings me around. Our laughter mixes and rings in the air, the world fading away as we get lost into the moment. My hand trembles as I run my palm over the picture in the photo frame. Those were some of our best moments, filled with joy and sweetness. Our relationship wasnât one of love, but he was slowly warming up to me. "Oh, looks like there is a thief in here," Nixie's voice startles me as I find her standing inside the room. "How dare you try to steal my things?" she accuses me with her arms crossed. I look at the clothes that I am holding. "These are my things." She scoffs, "No more. Whatever you had before, it all belongs to me now. Including Elijah." Her words cut deep, and she smiles in satisfaction, enjoying the effect her words have on me. Her eyes lower to my hand, zeroing in on the ring I am wearing. I look at the diamond ring. It's a very special ring to me as Elijah gifted it to me on my birthday. "This ring will protect you from everything and my heart is in it. I give it to you," He said when he slid it onto my index finger. It's a rare diamond that can't be bought with money. "Hand over that ring right now," Nixie says, her eyes beaming with greed. I take a step back, holding my hand. "No." This ring means a lot to me. Even if I am separated from Elijah, I still want to keep a part of him with me forever. âI wonât say it again. Give it to me; it's my order! Your Lunaâs order,â she shouts. âYou'll never be my Luna. And I'm not giving this to you,â I reply confidently. âHow dare you!â she grabs my wrist forcefully, and I yelp as a sharp pain shoots through my finger to my spine as she pulls the ring out of me forcefully. âGive it to me or Iâll cut your fingers off, you useless lowly beast!â she yells. Instinctively, I push her away with my other hand, and she stumbles back onto someoneâs chest. My eyes go round when I see Elijah holding her from behind. His eyes are as cold as the Arctic, freezing me in my spot. âWhat is happening here?â âE-elijah,â Nixie starts crying, and wraps her arms around his neck, âIââ she sniffs, âI was only asking her how costly the ring is and she pushed me away.â She sobs like a baby. âThatâs not true. She was trying to take the ring from me!â I protest. âSo what if she did?â he asks, his face like a carved stone with no emotions. I stare at him, trying to process what he said for a moment. âI told her that she can have the ring when she asked me about it.â My eyes widen in disbelief, unblinking as they stare at him. Time stands still. I canât believe what he is saying. âHand over the ring to her, Rena,â he demands in a frosty voice. My feet feel glued to the floor. Nixieâs lips curl in a smile as she watches me in despair. The room closes around me, suffocating me with the weight of its shattered expectations. My lips curve upwards, a smile tugging at the corners of my mouth. It's devoid of any joy and is a mask to hide the emptiness within. Why did I even hope that heâll care for me? Stupid, stupid me. I walk towards them and pull out the ring from my finger. âHere, take it,â I say while the smile remains intact. âYou can have everything else here too. I donât want it anymore.â It's exhausting to keep hoping that things will change, that heâll take me back. Those are my last words, and I walk out of the room, accepting my defeat. Nixie wins, I lose. Suddenly, I feel a hand grab my wrist from behind and hear Elijahâs voice, âRena.â I freeze. His voice is so gentle. My heart pounds in my chest, and I look past my shoulder to meet his black eyes. âThe rejection ceremony is going to start soon. Iâll wait for you at the training grounds.â Chapter 8 : The Rejection Verena I smile, while my heart breaks in pain. He is so good at crushing my heart, like it's an object. âI will be there in time.â Saying that, I pull my hand away from him, engraving his touch for the last time in my head. A while later, I look at my reflection in the mirror. Dark eye bags hang under my green eyes, like someone has sucked the soul out of me. Only half an hour left before the ceremony begins, and after that, I will be separated from Elijah completely. I have mentally prepared myself for it, but physically, I am in a mess. Nixie took all my clothes and accessories, even the ones I bought myself. I am not that interested in fashion, so most of my clothes and jewelry were gifted by Elijah. So now, I have nothing to wear except this dress that I have on. My hands tremble a little in concern. Without anything, it will be hard for me to survive. But then I remind myself that I will be a mother soon. Stress is not good for the baby. I rub my belly, âMamma promises to be strong from now on. You hang in there, pup.â I will need to dip into some of my savings to purchase new clothes and other necessities. But first, I must find a good hotel to stay in. My thoughts are interrupted by the loud sound of footsteps, and my face sours when I see Nixie walk in through the door, looking very chirpy. Now, what does she want? "Why are you here?" I ask in frustration, deciding not to turn around and act as though I am busy. Searching for hotels will be a better use of my time. I feel her close in, and she waves her hand before my face from behind. My gaze falls on the diamond ring on her finger, the ring I thought Elijah had gifted me as a sign of his love. My heart crumbles at the sight of it. "It suits me more than you, doesn't it? Elijah said that it looks better on me," she giggles, adding salt to my wound. I intentionally stay silent and focus on scrolling through a site that shows the various hotels available with their ratings and reviews. "Hello? I am talking to you!" she waves her hand again, clearly annoyed by not receiving her expected response. I refuse to give her the satisfaction of seeing me in pain, so I continue to avoid her. There's a groan from behind before she slaps my phone away, causing it to hit the hard, hardwood floor. I gasp at its state and immediately pick it up. The screen has cracked. "Now, that's a proper reaction," she says, smirking. Clenching my jaw, I face her. "Whatâs your problem, you mad woman?! I have divorced Elijah, and we are rejecting each other. That should be more than enough for you!" She sneers at me. "Don't act like you're doing me a favor. Actually, I'll do you a favor. Once you're rejected, I'll make sure you get banished after that." My face drains of all colors. Banishment? No! If I'm banished, I'll become a rogue with nowhere to live and no means to survive. That's assuming I don't get hurt by the dangerous creatures outside the borders or get captured by rogue traffickers who might sell me to some nasty, old Alpha as a slave first. I can't let my child be born in those circumstances. "Why? I'll leave this packhouse after rejection, so I won't be a threat to you anymore," I protest. She scowls. "Of course you are. I don't know what Elijah saw in you, but he seems to still care about you. He was telling me to return your clothes since he gave them to you," she rolls her eyes, "And he won't allow me to turn you into a slave for this packhouse either. So it means you're a threat to my position." I gulp, feeling a little relieved knowing that Elijah said that. But it's quickly replaced by Nixie's warning. "Be prepared to be kicked out. See you in the training grounds," she waves her hand and walks away humming a tune. My legs give out, and I collapse to the floor. My fingers curl around the bedsheet for support as I try to calm the crumbling anxiety inside me. What do I do now? I can't become a rogue. Dory walks in, her eyes falling on me. "Luna, are you okay?" she rushes up to me and helps me stand. She touches my forehead. "You're burning up. Did something happen?" I shake my head. "I'm fine. Is it time?" Her face falls, and she nods once. Taking a deep breath, I gather some courage. "Alright, let's go." Chapter 9 : Rejection I have to fight this. If Nixie wins, my pup will be in danger. I won't let that happen. We walk down the stairs and step outside. The sky is filled with gray clouds. On the large training grounds where the air usually buzzes with excitement and the energy of warriors, there's a damp, silent atmosphere among the people who came to watch the ceremony. None of them seem sad to watch me get rejected. They've never wanted me as their Luna because I'm an orphan. I take my place in the center of the ground. The people on the left clear a path for Elijah to walk through by standing in two rows, and he stops before the space created for the ceremony. Our eyes meet for a few seconds before he turns to the crowd. âI wonât waste time on explaining whatâs happening here as most of you present are already aware. But know that I wonât tolerate anyone breaking the rules. If anyone dares to say a bad word to Verena or insults her in any way, I will have your head. Rejected or not, she is still a respected member of our family and this pack. So you all are expected to treat her fairly. Is that clear?â The people nod in unison, fearing Elijahâs wrath. A part of me is glad that he is rejecting me in a respectful manner. It would have hurt a lot more if he just allowed anyone to publicly berate me, especially when I go through the rejection. Elijah walks closer to me, and looks into my eyes. I feel his breathing was a little erratic and his face didn't look quite right.. Is he drunk? "I, Elijah Donovan, Alpha of the Iron Claw Pack, reject you, Verena, as my fated mate and my Luna," he declares. I close my eyes, attempting to block out the pain threatening to consume me. But even in the darkness behind my eyelids, I feel the strength of the rejection, as it threatens to tear my body apart. The pain rattles through my bones, clogging my nostrils and leaving me breathless. Elijah extends his arm to help me, but I take a step back. I will endure this pain alone. "I, Verena, current Luna of the Iron Claw Pack, accept your rejection, Alpha Elijah," I declare. My legs wobble beneath my dress as the ache in my chest intensifies. I feel a strong convulsion in my belly, causing me to lose my balance and drop to the ground, clutching my stomach. My baby! "Rena, are you alright?" Elijah inquires, but I know better than to believe that he actually cares for me. Gradually, the pain subsides, and I feel the herbs taking action to protect my baby from the effects of the rejection. "I am fine," I manage to say, wiping my tear-soaked face. "You accepted it," he mutters under his breath. Was he not expecting it? I donât even understand him at this point. My limbs feel weak, so I remain in my place, trying to prevent myself from passing out. Just as I begin to feel like I have regained some control over my body, a strong scent hits my nose. It smells like lemons and grass, reminiscent of summer. I glance in the direction from which it's coming and spot a man walking into the crowd, looking around anxiously. Heâs as tall as Elijah, broad and well-built, with spiky light-blond hair, deep blue eyes, and a tattoo running down his left arm. His aura is powerful, like that of an Alpha. The moment his eyes land on me, he growls ferociously, his wolf showing in his eyes, "Mine!" | LEARN_MORE | https://wwwedb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=16560&u | New world publications | https://www.facebook.com/100090352943774/ | 3,782 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | wwwedb.com | DCO | https://wwwedb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=16560&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/470211616_1089749272699128_268792006170706946_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=100&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=0MC8cm6ASRMQ7kNvgFhkQQp&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AtQ23ouK47Om0vQ51H86oMr&oh=00_AYCnEFQJhX0TDbTdFa_l5dWXTrLUMkrTgxGMxrUMIE2jLA&oe=678B7B9C | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | New world publications | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,218 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664219}' |
Yes | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
He drunkenly hugged her âCall me husband again ......â | đNyla Jayston was in her third month of trying to conceive when she saw a message on her husband Clark Sumner's phone from a contact named "Jordyn Cheatham". Jordyn: [I think my new nightgown is a bit tight. Why don't you come over and check if it fits?] Attached was a selfie of a woman in a deep V-neck red slip dress, her body partly exposed, exuding seduction. Nyla's grip on the phone tightened. She scrolled up and found Clark and Jordyn's previous exchanges to be strictly work-related, which made her frown. 'Was the text sent by mistake? OrâŚ' A hand wrapped around Nyla's waist from behind, breaking her thoughts. Clark pressed his warm body against hers and gently nibbled her earlobe. "Honey, I'm all cleaned up. Do you want to do it on the couch or the bed?" Before Nyla could respond, Clark picked her up and laid her on the couch, his tall frame looming over her. "Since you're not saying anything, I'll choose. Let's do it on the couch," Clark said, his voice husky and his eyes filled with a flicker of fire that made Nyla blush instantly. Nyla was already beautiful, and the slight flush on her cheeks made her look like a tempting, ripe, juicy peach under the light. Clark's gaze grew darker. He leaned in to kiss Nyla, but she suddenly turned her head away. Sensing her resistance, he looked at her with confusion. "Honey, what's wrong?" Clark, usually assertive at work, now looked at Nyla with a mix of confusion and hurt, which softened her heart momentarily. Despite that, she hadn't forgotten the explicit selfie she had just seen. She stopped him with one hand on his chest and held up his phone with the other, showing him the screen. "Explain this first." Clark glanced at the screen and immediately frowned, grabbing the phone to make a call. It was quickly answered. "Mr. Sumner, what can I do for you?" Clark glowered, and his voice turned icy. "I didnât know my secretary started soliciting clients." There was a moment of silence before Jordyn's panicked voice came through. "M-Mr. Sumner, I'm sorry. That message was meant for my boyfriend. I must have sent it to you by mistake..." "Next time it happens, pack your things and leave!" Clark hung up and looked back at Nyla, his expression softening, even showing a hint of grievance. "Honey, she sent it by mistake. If you're still upset, I'll fire her tomorrow. It's late now, so letâs not waste time on someone unworthy. We haven't seen each other in a week. You need to make it up to me tonight." Clark pulled Nyla in for a kiss, but her mood was ruined despite the issue being cleared up. She wasn't in the mood anymore and pushed him away. "I'm tired tonight. Let's continue tomorrow." A flash of disappointment crossed Clark's eyes, but he didn't pressure her. "Alright, you sleep first. I'm not tired yet, so I'll go to the study to handle some work." "Okay." ⌠It started raining heavily in the middle of the night. The sound woke Nyla, and she reached out only to feel the cold space beside her. She glanced at the clockâ3:16 a.m. Nyla wondered whether Clark was still working. She got up, put on a robe, and went to the study, but it was dark and empty. Her grip on the doorknob tightened, and her heart sank. Nylaâs phone suddenly chimed, startling her in the quiet night. Seeing that it was a text from a stranger, she had a gut feeling that reading it would mean no turning back for her and Clark. A thunderclap boomed outside, startling her into accidentally pressing it. [Still awake? Because your husband isn't with you?] [I was scared because of the thunder and power outage, and he came to comfort me.] [Don't you want to know where your husband is?] As Nyla read the messages and the boastful tone, her hands trembled uncontrollably. After a long while, another text came in with an address and a series of digits. Nyla bit her lip, grabbed her car keys, and drove straight there. By the time she reached the villa, it was past 4:00 a.m. She entered the code, and the door unlocked. The living room lights were on. From the entrance to the bedroom door, a man's suit and a woman's lingerie were strewn about, revealing the urgency of their actions. Seeing the torn red nightgown at the bedroom door, Nyla felt a sense of absurdity. Although the distance from the entrance to the bedroom was only a few meters, it felt like an eternity to Nyla. Standing at the bedroom door, she felt light-headed and dizzy. She reached out, trembling, and slowly pushed the slightly open door. The sight of the messy bed and the bared couple entwinedâtheir heavy breathing filling the roomâpierced Nyla's heart. The couple was so engrossed that they didn't notice her standing there. Nyla's hand on the door frame turned white from gripping it too hard, leaving red marks on her palm. She had been with Clark for eight years, from school days to marriage, envied by everyone around them. Until today, she had never imagined betrayal between them. Now, reality dealt her a cruel blow. Even the most sincere wedding vows couldn't withstand a fickle heart. Unable to bear the sight, Nyla turned and stumbled out, driving away. She stopped by a bar on the way and decided to go in. ⌠By the time Valarie Weir arrived, Nyla had already downed two bottles of whiskey, her gaze slightly unfocused. "Valarie, you're here..." Seeing Nyla surrounded by several men, Valarie frowned. "All of you, leave!" "No, they're fine hereâ" "I said, leave!" After driving the men away, Valarie sat next to Nyla. "What happened? Did Clark really cheat on you?" Valarie was Nyla's university roommate and had witnessed Nyla and Clarkâs journey from school to marriage. She had seen Clark treat Nyla well all these years, so she couldn't believe he would cheat. Upon hearing Clarkâs name, Nyla's gaze dimmed, and the heart-wrenching pain came rushing back. "I don't want to hear that name right now." Chapter 2 Nyla downed her drink in one gulp. She had never imagined Clark would betray her. Seeing him in bed with another woman felt like a dagger through her heart. "I just can't believe it. He loved you so much. He didn't seem like the type to cheat. Maybe there's a misunderstanding," Valarie suggested. Nyla let out a cold laugh. "I saw it with my own eyes. How could that be a misunderstanding?" The room fell silent. Watching Nyla drink like there was no tomorrow, Valarie grabbed the glass from her hand. "Even if he cheated, you shouldn't punish yourself by getting drunk. What are you going to do now?" "I'm getting a divorce. Just thinking about him with that woman makes me sick." Upon seeing the defiance in Nylaâs red eyes, Valarie's heart ached. "Don't think about it now. You need to rest. Decide what to do next once youâre calm. I'll take you home." Nyla shook her head. "No... I don't want to go back." Returning to that house would only bring back the sickening images of Clarkâs betrayal. Each recollection made her feel nauseous. Seeing Nylaâs reluctance, Valarie didn't insist. "I'll book you a hotel room then." ⌠After booking a room, Valarie took Nyla to the hotel entrance. "Are you sure you don't want me to take you up?" Nyla shook her head. "No, you go rest. I'll be fine." She waved with the room card and walked into the hotel. Seeing Nyla walk steadily, Valarie finally breathed a sigh of relief and drove away once Nyla was inside the hotel. What she didn't know was that Nyla, when drunk, appeared sober but was actually a mess inside. Nyla entered the elevator, scanned her card, and the elevator began to ascend. Soon, the doors opened with a ding. As Nyla stepped out onto the carpet, her legs almost gave out. She steadied herself against the wall, massaging her aching temples while searching for her room number. The wine was taking its toll, and her vision blurred. She found Room 8919 and tried the card on the door. Hearing no beep, she frowned and was about to push the door when it suddenly opened. Nyla froze. Before she could react, a large hand yanked her into the dark room. The door slammed shut, cutting off the light from the hallway. She was pressed against the door, a man's breath hot against her ear, making her shiver. The familiar scent of pine filled her senses, but before she could place it, she felt the warmth of his lips on hers. "Mmph!" Realizing what was happening, Nyla struggled. Damon was strong, and with the wine dulling her strength, her hands felt weak, almost inviting as she pushed against his chest. Damonâs hands roamed her body, leaving a trail of fire, and her body grew more responsive under his touch. Nyla tried to push him away, but he easily caught her wrists and pinned them above her head. "Letâ Mmph! Let me goâŚ" He stopped kissing her and chuckled. "No need to play hard to get." His fingers traced her collar, the cool touch making her shudder. His body heat seemed to melt her, and her legs grew weak. In the dark, Nylaâs senses heightened. She felt Damon unbuttoning her clothes, her mouth dry, her last bit of rationality warning her that this was going too far. "Let me go!" She mustered all her strength to push him, but he simply picked her up and threw her onto the bed. The bed was soft, so Nyla didnât feel pain, but the impact made her head spin. She tried to get up, but Damon pinned her down. Soon, her clothes were gone, and they were both nearly bared. He pressed against her, ready. His dominating presence made her tremble. She pushed against his chest, biting her lip to stay calm and clear-headed. "Mister, I think I entered the wrong room. Please let me goâŚ" Nylaâs voice shook with tension. "Tsk!" Damon's voice was impatient, his tone cold. "Still playing?" He was about to get up and kick Nyla out when the room light suddenly came on. Nyla had accidentally hit the light switch in her struggle. The sudden light made Damon squint. He was shocked when he saw the terrified woman beneath him. Nyla, recognizing Damon, felt the blood drain from her face. The fear sobered her instantly. She couldnât believe itâthe man who almost violated her was Clarkâs uncle, Damon Summer! "Uncle DamonâŚ" Nyla had always been wary of Damon. He was the youngest son of Richard Sumner and Marie Thorne, doted on by them and known for his unpredictable, cold nature. Even outsiders avoided crossing him. When she married Clark, he had warned her to steer clear of Damon. "Shut up!" Damon's face was dark, his gaze icy, as he contemplated whether to silence her for good. Then, his eyes shifted to her bare body, darkening further. He turned away, getting off the bed. "Get dressed and get out!" As Damon moved, Nyla caught a glimpse of him where she shouldn't, and her face turned red with embarrassment. Upon seeing her flushed face, Damon's expression soured even more. "Still not leaving?" Nyla could not care less about her embarrassment as she hastily dressed and left without looking back. Once outside, she checked the room number and realized her mistakeâit wasnât Room 8919, but Room 8916! She had entered the wrong room and almost slept with her husbandâs uncle. The thought made her headache worse. She should have let Valarie take her up. Unfortunately, it was too late for regrets now. After Nyla left, Damon dialed a number with a glower on his face. "Delete all surveillance footage from the Empire Skyview Hotel tonight!" Upon hanging up, he looked at the messy bed and sheets, his irritation growing. He had almost slept with his nephewâs wife... What a mess! Chapter 3 On Nyla's way back, she hesitated for a long time before finally messaging Damon, someone whose contact she had had for three years but had never contacted. Nyla: [Uncle Damon... Can we pretend tonight never happened? I was really drunk and went to the wrong room.] She waited for a long time, but there was no response from Damon. Frowning, she sent another message. Nyla: [?] As soon as she sent it, a red exclamation mark appeared: [You are no longer friends with this user. Please send a friend request to continue chatting.] Nyla bit her lip. Damon had deleted her. He must not want to bring this up again. Relieved, she finally felt a bit of peace. ⌠When Nyla got home, it was already past 6:00 a.m. As soon as she opened the door, she saw Clark sitting on the sofa. He turned sharply at the sound of the door, his eyes bloodshot from a sleepless night. "Where were you last night? I called you dozens of times. Why didnât you answer?" Clark stood up and walked quickly toward her, reaching out to grab her hand, but she pulled away. He froze, about to speak, but she spoke first, her tone icy. "You can stay out all night, but I can't?" Nyla had always been gentle. In their eight years together, they had hardly ever argued. This was the first time she had spoken to him so coldly. Clark sensed something was wrong and noticed her red, swollen eyes. His expression changed, and his hand clenched at his side. "You know, don't you?" His voice was calm, without a trace of guilt or panic, as if he had expected this day to come. Upon seeing his unapologetic demeanor, Nyla's long-suppressed emotions finally exploded. She swung her bag at him, her eyes red with fury, like a madwoman. All the good times they had shared, all the happy moments, were shattered the moment she saw him in bed with another woman. They could never be pieced together again. "Clark Sumner, how could you do something so disgusting?! If you didnât love me anymore, you could have divorced me. Why did you have to hurt me like this?" Nyla had assumed that no third party could ever come between them. Unfortunately, reality gave her a harsh slap, waking her from the lies he had woven and turning her love for him into a joke. Seeing her red, tear-filled eyes, Clark felt a pang in his chest. He grabbed her hand and pulled her into his arms. "Nyla, Iâm sorry..." Nyla shoved him away, wanting to laugh but only tears came. "Donât touch me with your filthy hands! "Is it that hard to stay faithful? "Since we got married, Iâve met many excellent men, and some have shown interest in me. But Iâve never crossed the line. If I can do it, why canât you?!" Clark clenched his fists when he saw the disappointment and anger in her eyes. "Nyla, youâre the only one I love⌠It was just an accident with herâŚ" His explanation sounded so weak that Nyla found it both laughable and nauseating. "So youâre saying I could sleep with another man and then tell you it was an accident? That I may have betrayed you physically, but my heart still belongs to you?" A flash of ruthlessness crossed Clark's eyes. "If you dare, Iâll end you and that man together in bed." Seeing his icy gaze, Nyla felt a chill in her heart. If he knew betrayal was unforgivable, why would he still betray her? She took a deep breath and spoke slowly. "Do you remember what I told you when you proposed?" She had said that if he ever betrayed her, she would not forgive him but leave him. Clarkâs expression changed. "I will not let you leave!" Nyla wiped her tears, her expression a mixture of ridicule and hatred. "Whether you agree or not, Iâve made up my mind. Iâm divorcing you. You donât deserve my forgiveness." With that, she ignored his reaction and went upstairs. Clark stared at her back, his gaze dark. ⌠Back in the bedroom, Nyla went straight to the bathroom to shower, unable to stand the smell of wine on herself. While applying body wash, she noticed red marks on her chest and paused. The image of Damonâs hands roaming her body flashed through her mind, making her frown. She scrubbed the marks hard until the skin around them turned red, trying to erase his touch. After her shower, she saw Clark sitting on the bed with his head down, lost in thought. She frowned and decided to ignore him. They would be divorced soon anyway. Clark looked up and saw Nyla coming out in just a towel. Her damp hair dripped water, her freshly washed face flushed like a blooming rose with an enticing fragrance. The towel barely covered her behinds, revealing her long, fair legs. His breath hitched, his gaze glued on her. Nyla didnât notice Clark's reaction. She walked to the wardrobe to grab her pajamas when a pair of arms suddenly wrapped around her from behind. "Nyla..." Clark's voice was husky, filled with undisguised desire. Clark had been thinking about how to win her back downstairs after she left. The only way he could think of was to have a child with her. He had come upstairs to discuss this with her, planning to take it slow. However, he lost control upon seeing her just out of the shower. In the past, such behavior would have stirred Nyla's feelings, but all she felt now was disgust. She turned and pushed him away, her gaze full of revulsion. "Donât touch me. I feel dirty." Hurt flashed in Clark's eyes. He grabbed her hands, his expression earnest. "Didnât you always want a child? Letâs have one now, okay?" Nyla shook him off at his matter-of-fact attitude. "That was before. I might have a child in the future, but it wonât be yours." Her words enraged Clark. He grabbed her and threw her onto the bed, pinning her down. "Say that again!" His eyes were full of anger, but Nyla didnât care. "It doesnât matter how many times I say it. Iâm disgusted by you. Iâd rather die than have your child." As soon as she finished speaking, Clark kissed her fiercely. Chapter 4 Nyla froze for a moment, then struggled desperately. Just the thought of Clark kissing another woman the night before filled her with disgust and rage. "Let go!" Her struggles were futile against Clark, who only tightened his grip around her waist. As she fought, her towel loosened, revealing her body. His gaze darkened, and he felt a rush of desire. Their bodies were pressed tightly together, and Nyla quickly noticed the change in Clark. Furious, she bit him hard, tasting blood in their mouths. Instead of letting go, Clark's other hand slipped under Nyla's towel. She had nothing on underneath, having just come out of the shower. She stiffened and struggled even more fiercely. "Clark, get off me!" Clark ignored Nyla, his fingers teasing her sensitive spots. "Nyla, you need me too, don't you?" Nylaâs struggles were in vain, and she grew increasingly desperate. As Clark positioned himself, she closed her eyes in despair. "Clark, don't make me hate you." Clark halted abruptly. Seeing Nyla filled with despair and pain, like a fragile porcelain doll about to shatter, made him pause. He wanted her desperately, but a voice in his head warned that if he took her now, it would be the end of them. He stared at her, his hand tightening around her waist. After several tense seconds, he suddenly let go and got off the bed, leaving the room quickly. The door slammed shut with a loud bang, making Nyla flinch. She clutched the blanket tightly. ⌠For the next few days, Clark didn't come home. Nyla called him several times to discuss the divorce, but he didn't respond. ⌠The weekend arrived. Nyla was in the living room, sending out job applications when she heard the front door open. Clark walked in, looking haggard. They stared at each other in silence until Nyla broke it, closing her laptop and standing up calmly. "Since you're back, let's talk about the divorce." Clark frowned. "I told you, I won't divorce you. I'm here to remind you that we have to go to the family dinner tonight." The Sumners held a monthly dinner, and ever since their wedding, Clark and Nyla had attended together. The family wasn't kind to Nyla, often treating her poorly. She endured it because she believed Clark loved her. After seeing him with another woman, however, she couldn't lie to herself anymore. "I don't want to go. Go by yourself." Clarkâs expression turned impatient. "Nyla, how long are you going to keep this up?" He had ignored her calls and messages, hoping she would calm down, but she was still the same. "I'm not keeping anything up. I just want a divorce." Upon hearing the word "divorce", Clark's patience wore thin. He looked at Nyla as if she were unreasonable. "Divorce? You haven't worked since we got married. How will you support yourself? Which company would hire you? And what about your father's exorbitant medical bills? Can you afford those? "Nyla, you're not a teenager anymore. You're 28. It's time to grow up. "I'm the CEO of the Sumner Group. I face temptations all the time. Sometimes, it's hard to resist, but those women will never take your place as my wife. What more do you want?" Clark couldn't understand why Nyla didn't see that he still loved her, even if he couldn't commit to being with her forever. Seeing Clarkâs arrogant demeanor, Nyla couldn't reconcile this man with the shy boy who had once blushed while confessing his love and promising never to hurt her. Maybe this was his true selfâselfish, proud, and condescending. "If being mature means tolerating your infidelity, then I'm sorry, I can't do that. Find someone else. Here are the divorce papers I've had drafted. Sign them when you have time." Clark glanced at the documents, sneering when he saw the section on asset division. "Quite the appetite you have, asking for half my assets. Do you really think that's possible?" "I deserve it. Why not?" Clark chuckled, his tone mocking. "Look around this house. Did you buy anything here? I've been covering your father's medical expenses for years. If we tally things up, you should be paying me. Should I have my lawyer do the math?" As Nyla watched his bitter expression, she couldn't believe she had once loved this man. He had hidden his true self so well that, until she caught him cheating, she had thought he was a great guy. "Don't forget, if it weren't for me giving you that patent, you wouldn't be the Sumner Group's CEO. And you were the one who told me to stay home after we got married. If I had continued my research, I would have earned far more than what you've given me." Unfazed, Clark replied, "Who would believe you about the patent now? "I don't want to argue about money, but if you insist on a divorce, we'll have to settle accounts. Nyla, as long as you drop the divorce idea, my money is still yours to use." "Clark, you're despicable!" Since he refused to divorce, she'd have to sue. She turned to leave, but he blocked her. "Change your clothes. We're going to the family dinner." "I said I'm not going. Tell them I'm not feeling well." Clark grabbed her wrist. "Nyla, I'm running out of patience. Don't force me to cut off your father's medical expenses." "You wouldn't dare!" Clark took out his phone and called his secretary. "Cancel my father-in-law's medical payment for next monthâ" Furious, Nyla grabbed his phone and ended the call. "You're crossing a line, Clark." "Crossing a line?" Clark's gaze was full of contempt as he yanked her closer. "Everything you have is because of me. Don't you think you're the one crossing the line? Change your clothes, or I have numerous ways to make you comply." Chapter 5 Seeing the coldness in Clark's eyes, Nyla realized how blind she had been to fall in love with such a man. Her eyes stung with unshed tears, but she refused to show any vulnerability in front of him. She yanked her hand away, took a deep breath, and headed upstairs. The only thought in her mind was to find a job quickly so she could move out and divorce Clark. She grabbed a random outfit, tied her hair up with a hairpin, and went back downstairs. She was never one to fuss over her appearance. In the past, she had dressed up for the Sumners' gatherings to make a good impression. Now, she couldn't care less. Hearing her footsteps, Clark looked up. Nyla wore a fitted white dress, her waist so slender it seemed it could be encircled with one hand. Her hair was secured with a jade hairpin, revealing her delicate neck. She was breathtakingly beautiful. The grace she exuded was just like when they first met. However, the look in her eyes now was devoid of any warmth. "Letâs go," she said. They drove to the Sumner residence in silence. As they arrived and were about to get out of the car, a black Range Rover sped up and stopped abruptly in front of them. Upon recognizing the car, Clark's expression darkened. It was Damon's car, someone he both feared and disliked. Damon was known for his reckless and unpredictable behavior. He had refused to take over the Sumner Group when Richard wanted him to run the company, choosing to start his own business instead. Everyone had expected him to fail, but within five years, his company had grown to be worth several times more than the Sumner Group. Clark couldn't stand Damon, partly out of jealousy. Once, a comment Clark made about Damon reached Damon's ears, and in retaliation, Damon refused to collaborate with the Sumner Group, costing them millions. Damon rarely attended family dinners, and Clark had hoped to avoid him. Luck wasnât on his side todayâthey met at the door. He didnât notice Nylaâs stiffened expression when she saw Damon get out of his car. Clark opened the car door and greeted, "Uncle Damon." Damon glanced at him indifferently, his gaze briefly landing on the passenger seat before he nodded and walked into the house. Nyla let out a deep breath. When Damon looked her way, she had forgotten to breathe, fearing he might say something outrageous. He was known for his unpredictable nature, always doing whatever he pleased. Fortunately, he said nothing. She decided she needed to talk to him privately later. As Clark and Nyla walked into the living room, they saw it was already filled with people. Richard and Marie, the family heads, were chatting with Damon. He was the kind of person who naturally stood out in a crowd. Noticing Nylaâs gaze on Damon, Clark frowned. "Why are you staring at my uncle?" Nyla withdrew her gaze and replied coolly, "None of your business." Her coldness irritated Clark. "Nyla, you know I donât like you paying attention to other men." Ever since they got together, Clark had been extremely controlling, not allowing Nyla to interact with other men. She used to think this was a sign of his love, but now it seemed laughable. She sneered. "And I donât like you sleeping with other women, but you seem to enjoy it just fine." Clark said through gritted teeth, "This is a family dinner. Weâll deal with this later." "If you donât want me to bring it up, then stay out of my business," she retorted. Clark didnât want to cause a scene now because it might affect the Sumner Group and his standing with Richard, who still held all the companyâs shares. As they talked, Marie called out, "Nyla, Clark, youâre here! Come sit down!" Nyla took a deep breath, forcing a smile as she approached. She might not like the Sumners, but she maintained basic manners. "Hello, Grandpa, Grandma," she greeted with a smile. Marie, who had been urging Damon to settle down and get married, looked pleased to see the couple. "Come, sit down." She turned to Damon with a hint of dissatisfaction. "Look at Clark. He manages the company well and has a beautiful wife. They might have children soon. And you? Almost 30 and still single. If you donât bring a girlfriend next time, donât bother coming!" Damon glanced at the couple with a smirk. "She is indeed beautiful." He just wondered how that petite frame would suffer if she were to have children. Nyla frowned, feeling uncomfortable with Damonâs gaze. Clark also noticed the inappropriate way Damon looked at Nyla. It wasnât the look of an elder but more like a man admiring a woman. His hand clenched into a fist, and his body tensed. Marie sighed. "My point is, when will you bring me a daughter-in-law?" "Depends. If I meet someone I like, maybe Iâll bring her back tomorrow," Damon replied nonchalantly. "Youâre too picky! Iâve arranged a good match for you. Date's tomorrow, donât ruin it." "Then youâll probably have to apologize to another old friend tomorrow." Frustrated, Marie snapped, âYouâre going to drive me crazy!â Damon glanced at Clark. âClark's been married for years. Instead of pushing me, why donât you encourage him to have kids?â Marie nodded, realizing Damon wouldnât listen to her. She turned to Nyla and Clark, her expression softening. âNyla, you and Clark have been married for a few years now. When are you planning to have children?â Chapter 6 Nyla lifted her head to speak, but Clark grabbed her hand and smiled. "Grandma, we're working on it!" Nyla tried to pull her hand away, but Clark's grip was too tight. If he wouldn't let her be, she wouldn't make it easy for him either. She turned to Marie. "Grandma, I'm looking for a job right now, so having children might have to wait." The room fell silent. Clark's grip on Nyla's hand tightened painfully, and she winced. Damon glanced at Clark's hand on Nyla, noticing the bulging veins, then looked away indifferently. Clarkâs aunt, Anne Sumner, sneered. "Nyla, don't blame me for being blunt. You've been married for years. How can you not have a child yet? If it weren't for Clark insisting on marrying you, do you think your family could have ever married into the Sumners? "You should be grateful. If you don't want to have Clark's child, there are plenty of women who do. If someone else steps in, youâll be the one looking silly." Besides, Anne thought, "Who knows if Nyla is fertile?" She sounded like she meant well, but her gaze at Nyla was filled with an air of superiority. Marie frowned at Anne, disapproving. "Anne, enough." Anne pursed her lips but stayed silent. Marie turned back to Nyla with a kind smile. "Nyla, you and Clark are still young. If you don't want children yet, that's fine. Just don't overwork yourself. Our family isn't short on money. You can work if you want, but take it easy." Nyla nodded. "I understand, Grandma." With that, the awkward moment passed, and the room returned to its previous warmth. Seeing the attention shift away, Clark pulled Nyla out of the living room. Once they reached the gazebo in the backyard, he released her. "Nyla, have you lost your mind? Do you want everyone to know about our fight?" Nyla rubbed her sore hand and said, "I was just being honest." "Honest?" Clark scowled. "Should I call your father then?" Harrison Jayston was ill and couldn't handle stress. Nyla planned to divorce Clark before breaking the news to him gently. She glared at Clark. "You wouldnât dare! You were the one who cheated. What right do you have to be so self-righteous?" Clark clenched his hands, a flicker of guilt crossing his face before it was replaced by impatience. "I promised it wouldnât happen again. If you don't want to see Jordyn, I'll fire her. What more do you want?" Nyla felt like there was a communication breakdown between them and turned away. "I don't want to argue with you here." When Clark saw her red-rimmed eyes, he softened. "Nyla, I truly know I was wrong. Just don't mention divorce, and I'll make it up to you. I love you. I can't let you go." Nyla found it laughable. How could he claim to love her while being with another woman? Just thinking about him with someone else made her sick. "I will never forgive you." Betrayal was her bottom line. She couldnât pretend nothing had happened or reconcile with him. Clark knew Nyla well enough to understand that he had to be patient. He believed she still had feelings for him. Otherwise, she would have made a bigger scene when she found out. As long as he refused to divorce her, she would eventually forgive him. "Fine, we won't talk about it now. If you don't want kids yet, weâll postpone it to two years later. Since you want to work, I'll have my secretary find you a position at the Sumner Group." Nyla laughed at his arrangement, a mocking look in her eyes. "Clark, do you see me as a puppet you can control?" Hurt by her gaze, Clark frowned. "How am I controlling you? You don't want kids now, so I agreed to wait two years. You want to work, so I'll arrange it. What more do you want?" "Stop pretending. I don't want kids because I want a divorce. I want to work to sever ties with you." Clark looked at Nyla's stubborn face, displeased. Since their wedding, she had been like a canary in his cage. He couldn't let her go. "As long as I don't agree, this marriage won't end. Even if you tell a lawyer I cheated, do you have proof?" Clark's confident tone and controlling demeanor made Nyla step back, trembling with anger. She finally saw how selfish and disgusting he was. She had wasted eight yearsâthe best years of her life, from 18 to 26âloving this man. "You make me sick, Clark!" Seeing the undisguised disgust in Nyla's eyes, Clar | LEARN_MORE | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692& | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 988 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | findedc.com | DCO | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/468455042_1262834138099234_1389968434765802098_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=WE3kUIHYboMQ7kNvgFHMCRw&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Al-BgLHW88QiakSkDEYKmPL&oh=00_AYBkj5qKAc1ryUVXY2Kd1MYG7wHnDhwveGA0PONReLRaCw&oe=678B7887 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,211 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664219}' |
Yes | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
He drunkenly hugged her âCall me husband again ......â | đNyla Jayston was in her third month of trying to conceive when she saw a message on her husband Clark Sumner's phone from a contact named "Jordyn Cheatham". Jordyn: [I think my new nightgown is a bit tight. Why don't you come over and check if it fits?] Attached was a selfie of a woman in a deep V-neck red slip dress, her body partly exposed, exuding seduction. Nyla's grip on the phone tightened. She scrolled up and found Clark and Jordyn's previous exchanges to be strictly work-related, which made her frown. 'Was the text sent by mistake? OrâŚ' A hand wrapped around Nyla's waist from behind, breaking her thoughts. Clark pressed his warm body against hers and gently nibbled her earlobe. "Honey, I'm all cleaned up. Do you want to do it on the couch or the bed?" Before Nyla could respond, Clark picked her up and laid her on the couch, his tall frame looming over her. "Since you're not saying anything, I'll choose. Let's do it on the couch," Clark said, his voice husky and his eyes filled with a flicker of fire that made Nyla blush instantly. Nyla was already beautiful, and the slight flush on her cheeks made her look like a tempting, ripe, juicy peach under the light. Clark's gaze grew darker. He leaned in to kiss Nyla, but she suddenly turned her head away. Sensing her resistance, he looked at her with confusion. "Honey, what's wrong?" Clark, usually assertive at work, now looked at Nyla with a mix of confusion and hurt, which softened her heart momentarily. Despite that, she hadn't forgotten the explicit selfie she had just seen. She stopped him with one hand on his chest and held up his phone with the other, showing him the screen. "Explain this first." Clark glanced at the screen and immediately frowned, grabbing the phone to make a call. It was quickly answered. "Mr. Sumner, what can I do for you?" Clark glowered, and his voice turned icy. "I didnât know my secretary started soliciting clients." There was a moment of silence before Jordyn's panicked voice came through. "M-Mr. Sumner, I'm sorry. That message was meant for my boyfriend. I must have sent it to you by mistake..." "Next time it happens, pack your things and leave!" Clark hung up and looked back at Nyla, his expression softening, even showing a hint of grievance. "Honey, she sent it by mistake. If you're still upset, I'll fire her tomorrow. It's late now, so letâs not waste time on someone unworthy. We haven't seen each other in a week. You need to make it up to me tonight." Clark pulled Nyla in for a kiss, but her mood was ruined despite the issue being cleared up. She wasn't in the mood anymore and pushed him away. "I'm tired tonight. Let's continue tomorrow." A flash of disappointment crossed Clark's eyes, but he didn't pressure her. "Alright, you sleep first. I'm not tired yet, so I'll go to the study to handle some work." "Okay." ⌠It started raining heavily in the middle of the night. The sound woke Nyla, and she reached out only to feel the cold space beside her. She glanced at the clockâ3:16 a.m. Nyla wondered whether Clark was still working. She got up, put on a robe, and went to the study, but it was dark and empty. Her grip on the doorknob tightened, and her heart sank. Nylaâs phone suddenly chimed, startling her in the quiet night. Seeing that it was a text from a stranger, she had a gut feeling that reading it would mean no turning back for her and Clark. A thunderclap boomed outside, startling her into accidentally pressing it. [Still awake? Because your husband isn't with you?] [I was scared because of the thunder and power outage, and he came to comfort me.] [Don't you want to know where your husband is?] As Nyla read the messages and the boastful tone, her hands trembled uncontrollably. After a long while, another text came in with an address and a series of digits. Nyla bit her lip, grabbed her car keys, and drove straight there. By the time she reached the villa, it was past 4:00 a.m. She entered the code, and the door unlocked. The living room lights were on. From the entrance to the bedroom door, a man's suit and a woman's lingerie were strewn about, revealing the urgency of their actions. Seeing the torn red nightgown at the bedroom door, Nyla felt a sense of absurdity. Although the distance from the entrance to the bedroom was only a few meters, it felt like an eternity to Nyla. Standing at the bedroom door, she felt light-headed and dizzy. She reached out, trembling, and slowly pushed the slightly open door. The sight of the messy bed and the bared couple entwinedâtheir heavy breathing filling the roomâpierced Nyla's heart. The couple was so engrossed that they didn't notice her standing there. Nyla's hand on the door frame turned white from gripping it too hard, leaving red marks on her palm. She had been with Clark for eight years, from school days to marriage, envied by everyone around them. Until today, she had never imagined betrayal between them. Now, reality dealt her a cruel blow. Even the most sincere wedding vows couldn't withstand a fickle heart. Unable to bear the sight, Nyla turned and stumbled out, driving away. She stopped by a bar on the way and decided to go in. ⌠By the time Valarie Weir arrived, Nyla had already downed two bottles of whiskey, her gaze slightly unfocused. "Valarie, you're here..." Seeing Nyla surrounded by several men, Valarie frowned. "All of you, leave!" "No, they're fine hereâ" "I said, leave!" After driving the men away, Valarie sat next to Nyla. "What happened? Did Clark really cheat on you?" Valarie was Nyla's university roommate and had witnessed Nyla and Clarkâs journey from school to marriage. She had seen Clark treat Nyla well all these years, so she couldn't believe he would cheat. Upon hearing Clarkâs name, Nyla's gaze dimmed, and the heart-wrenching pain came rushing back. "I don't want to hear that name right now." Chapter 2 Nyla downed her drink in one gulp. She had never imagined Clark would betray her. Seeing him in bed with another woman felt like a dagger through her heart. "I just can't believe it. He loved you so much. He didn't seem like the type to cheat. Maybe there's a misunderstanding," Valarie suggested. Nyla let out a cold laugh. "I saw it with my own eyes. How could that be a misunderstanding?" The room fell silent. Watching Nyla drink like there was no tomorrow, Valarie grabbed the glass from her hand. "Even if he cheated, you shouldn't punish yourself by getting drunk. What are you going to do now?" "I'm getting a divorce. Just thinking about him with that woman makes me sick." Upon seeing the defiance in Nylaâs red eyes, Valarie's heart ached. "Don't think about it now. You need to rest. Decide what to do next once youâre calm. I'll take you home." Nyla shook her head. "No... I don't want to go back." Returning to that house would only bring back the sickening images of Clarkâs betrayal. Each recollection made her feel nauseous. Seeing Nylaâs reluctance, Valarie didn't insist. "I'll book you a hotel room then." ⌠After booking a room, Valarie took Nyla to the hotel entrance. "Are you sure you don't want me to take you up?" Nyla shook her head. "No, you go rest. I'll be fine." She waved with the room card and walked into the hotel. Seeing Nyla walk steadily, Valarie finally breathed a sigh of relief and drove away once Nyla was inside the hotel. What she didn't know was that Nyla, when drunk, appeared sober but was actually a mess inside. Nyla entered the elevator, scanned her card, and the elevator began to ascend. Soon, the doors opened with a ding. As Nyla stepped out onto the carpet, her legs almost gave out. She steadied herself against the wall, massaging her aching temples while searching for her room number. The wine was taking its toll, and her vision blurred. She found Room 8919 and tried the card on the door. Hearing no beep, she frowned and was about to push the door when it suddenly opened. Nyla froze. Before she could react, a large hand yanked her into the dark room. The door slammed shut, cutting off the light from the hallway. She was pressed against the door, a man's breath hot against her ear, making her shiver. The familiar scent of pine filled her senses, but before she could place it, she felt the warmth of his lips on hers. "Mmph!" Realizing what was happening, Nyla struggled. Damon was strong, and with the wine dulling her strength, her hands felt weak, almost inviting as she pushed against his chest. Damonâs hands roamed her body, leaving a trail of fire, and her body grew more responsive under his touch. Nyla tried to push him away, but he easily caught her wrists and pinned them above her head. "Letâ Mmph! Let me goâŚ" He stopped kissing her and chuckled. "No need to play hard to get." His fingers traced her collar, the cool touch making her shudder. His body heat seemed to melt her, and her legs grew weak. In the dark, Nylaâs senses heightened. She felt Damon unbuttoning her clothes, her mouth dry, her last bit of rationality warning her that this was going too far. "Let me go!" She mustered all her strength to push him, but he simply picked her up and threw her onto the bed. The bed was soft, so Nyla didnât feel pain, but the impact made her head spin. She tried to get up, but Damon pinned her down. Soon, her clothes were gone, and they were both nearly bared. He pressed against her, ready. His dominating presence made her tremble. She pushed against his chest, biting her lip to stay calm and clear-headed. "Mister, I think I entered the wrong room. Please let me goâŚ" Nylaâs voice shook with tension. "Tsk!" Damon's voice was impatient, his tone cold. "Still playing?" He was about to get up and kick Nyla out when the room light suddenly came on. Nyla had accidentally hit the light switch in her struggle. The sudden light made Damon squint. He was shocked when he saw the terrified woman beneath him. Nyla, recognizing Damon, felt the blood drain from her face. The fear sobered her instantly. She couldnât believe itâthe man who almost violated her was Clarkâs uncle, Damon Summer! "Uncle DamonâŚ" Nyla had always been wary of Damon. He was the youngest son of Richard Sumner and Marie Thorne, doted on by them and known for his unpredictable, cold nature. Even outsiders avoided crossing him. When she married Clark, he had warned her to steer clear of Damon. "Shut up!" Damon's face was dark, his gaze icy, as he contemplated whether to silence her for good. Then, his eyes shifted to her bare body, darkening further. He turned away, getting off the bed. "Get dressed and get out!" As Damon moved, Nyla caught a glimpse of him where she shouldn't, and her face turned red with embarrassment. Upon seeing her flushed face, Damon's expression soured even more. "Still not leaving?" Nyla could not care less about her embarrassment as she hastily dressed and left without looking back. Once outside, she checked the room number and realized her mistakeâit wasnât Room 8919, but Room 8916! She had entered the wrong room and almost slept with her husbandâs uncle. The thought made her headache worse. She should have let Valarie take her up. Unfortunately, it was too late for regrets now. After Nyla left, Damon dialed a number with a glower on his face. "Delete all surveillance footage from the Empire Skyview Hotel tonight!" Upon hanging up, he looked at the messy bed and sheets, his irritation growing. He had almost slept with his nephewâs wife... What a mess! Chapter 3 On Nyla's way back, she hesitated for a long time before finally messaging Damon, someone whose contact she had had for three years but had never contacted. Nyla: [Uncle Damon... Can we pretend tonight never happened? I was really drunk and went to the wrong room.] She waited for a long time, but there was no response from Damon. Frowning, she sent another message. Nyla: [?] As soon as she sent it, a red exclamation mark appeared: [You are no longer friends with this user. Please send a friend request to continue chatting.] Nyla bit her lip. Damon had deleted her. He must not want to bring this up again. Relieved, she finally felt a bit of peace. ⌠When Nyla got home, it was already past 6:00 a.m. As soon as she opened the door, she saw Clark sitting on the sofa. He turned sharply at the sound of the door, his eyes bloodshot from a sleepless night. "Where were you last night? I called you dozens of times. Why didnât you answer?" Clark stood up and walked quickly toward her, reaching out to grab her hand, but she pulled away. He froze, about to speak, but she spoke first, her tone icy. "You can stay out all night, but I can't?" Nyla had always been gentle. In their eight years together, they had hardly ever argued. This was the first time she had spoken to him so coldly. Clark sensed something was wrong and noticed her red, swollen eyes. His expression changed, and his hand clenched at his side. "You know, don't you?" His voice was calm, without a trace of guilt or panic, as if he had expected this day to come. Upon seeing his unapologetic demeanor, Nyla's long-suppressed emotions finally exploded. She swung her bag at him, her eyes red with fury, like a madwoman. All the good times they had shared, all the happy moments, were shattered the moment she saw him in bed with another woman. They could never be pieced together again. "Clark Sumner, how could you do something so disgusting?! If you didnât love me anymore, you could have divorced me. Why did you have to hurt me like this?" Nyla had assumed that no third party could ever come between them. Unfortunately, reality gave her a harsh slap, waking her from the lies he had woven and turning her love for him into a joke. Seeing her red, tear-filled eyes, Clark felt a pang in his chest. He grabbed her hand and pulled her into his arms. "Nyla, Iâm sorry..." Nyla shoved him away, wanting to laugh but only tears came. "Donât touch me with your filthy hands! "Is it that hard to stay faithful? "Since we got married, Iâve met many excellent men, and some have shown interest in me. But Iâve never crossed the line. If I can do it, why canât you?!" Clark clenched his fists when he saw the disappointment and anger in her eyes. "Nyla, youâre the only one I love⌠It was just an accident with herâŚ" His explanation sounded so weak that Nyla found it both laughable and nauseating. "So youâre saying I could sleep with another man and then tell you it was an accident? That I may have betrayed you physically, but my heart still belongs to you?" A flash of ruthlessness crossed Clark's eyes. "If you dare, Iâll end you and that man together in bed." Seeing his icy gaze, Nyla felt a chill in her heart. If he knew betrayal was unforgivable, why would he still betray her? She took a deep breath and spoke slowly. "Do you remember what I told you when you proposed?" She had said that if he ever betrayed her, she would not forgive him but leave him. Clarkâs expression changed. "I will not let you leave!" Nyla wiped her tears, her expression a mixture of ridicule and hatred. "Whether you agree or not, Iâve made up my mind. Iâm divorcing you. You donât deserve my forgiveness." With that, she ignored his reaction and went upstairs. Clark stared at her back, his gaze dark. ⌠Back in the bedroom, Nyla went straight to the bathroom to shower, unable to stand the smell of wine on herself. While applying body wash, she noticed red marks on her chest and paused. The image of Damonâs hands roaming her body flashed through her mind, making her frown. She scrubbed the marks hard until the skin around them turned red, trying to erase his touch. After her shower, she saw Clark sitting on the bed with his head down, lost in thought. She frowned and decided to ignore him. They would be divorced soon anyway. Clark looked up and saw Nyla coming out in just a towel. Her damp hair dripped water, her freshly washed face flushed like a blooming rose with an enticing fragrance. The towel barely covered her behinds, revealing her long, fair legs. His breath hitched, his gaze glued on her. Nyla didnât notice Clark's reaction. She walked to the wardrobe to grab her pajamas when a pair of arms suddenly wrapped around her from behind. "Nyla..." Clark's voice was husky, filled with undisguised desire. Clark had been thinking about how to win her back downstairs after she left. The only way he could think of was to have a child with her. He had come upstairs to discuss this with her, planning to take it slow. However, he lost control upon seeing her just out of the shower. In the past, such behavior would have stirred Nyla's feelings, but all she felt now was disgust. She turned and pushed him away, her gaze full of revulsion. "Donât touch me. I feel dirty." Hurt flashed in Clark's eyes. He grabbed her hands, his expression earnest. "Didnât you always want a child? Letâs have one now, okay?" Nyla shook him off at his matter-of-fact attitude. "That was before. I might have a child in the future, but it wonât be yours." Her words enraged Clark. He grabbed her and threw her onto the bed, pinning her down. "Say that again!" His eyes were full of anger, but Nyla didnât care. "It doesnât matter how many times I say it. Iâm disgusted by you. Iâd rather die than have your child." As soon as she finished speaking, Clark kissed her fiercely. Chapter 4 Nyla froze for a moment, then struggled desperately. Just the thought of Clark kissing another woman the night before filled her with disgust and rage. "Let go!" Her struggles were futile against Clark, who only tightened his grip around her waist. As she fought, her towel loosened, revealing her body. His gaze darkened, and he felt a rush of desire. Their bodies were pressed tightly together, and Nyla quickly noticed the change in Clark. Furious, she bit him hard, tasting blood in their mouths. Instead of letting go, Clark's other hand slipped under Nyla's towel. She had nothing on underneath, having just come out of the shower. She stiffened and struggled even more fiercely. "Clark, get off me!" Clark ignored Nyla, his fingers teasing her sensitive spots. "Nyla, you need me too, don't you?" Nylaâs struggles were in vain, and she grew increasingly desperate. As Clark positioned himself, she closed her eyes in despair. "Clark, don't make me hate you." Clark halted abruptly. Seeing Nyla filled with despair and pain, like a fragile porcelain doll about to shatter, made him pause. He wanted her desperately, but a voice in his head warned that if he took her now, it would be the end of them. He stared at her, his hand tightening around her waist. After several tense seconds, he suddenly let go and got off the bed, leaving the room quickly. The door slammed shut with a loud bang, making Nyla flinch. She clutched the blanket tightly. ⌠For the next few days, Clark didn't come home. Nyla called him several times to discuss the divorce, but he didn't respond. ⌠The weekend arrived. Nyla was in the living room, sending out job applications when she heard the front door open. Clark walked in, looking haggard. They stared at each other in silence until Nyla broke it, closing her laptop and standing up calmly. "Since you're back, let's talk about the divorce." Clark frowned. "I told you, I won't divorce you. I'm here to remind you that we have to go to the family dinner tonight." The Sumners held a monthly dinner, and ever since their wedding, Clark and Nyla had attended together. The family wasn't kind to Nyla, often treating her poorly. She endured it because she believed Clark loved her. After seeing him with another woman, however, she couldn't lie to herself anymore. "I don't want to go. Go by yourself." Clarkâs expression turned impatient. "Nyla, how long are you going to keep this up?" He had ignored her calls and messages, hoping she would calm down, but she was still the same. "I'm not keeping anything up. I just want a divorce." Upon hearing the word "divorce", Clark's patience wore thin. He looked at Nyla as if she were unreasonable. "Divorce? You haven't worked since we got married. How will you support yourself? Which company would hire you? And what about your father's exorbitant medical bills? Can you afford those? "Nyla, you're not a teenager anymore. You're 28. It's time to grow up. "I'm the CEO of the Sumner Group. I face temptations all the time. Sometimes, it's hard to resist, but those women will never take your place as my wife. What more do you want?" Clark couldn't understand why Nyla didn't see that he still loved her, even if he couldn't commit to being with her forever. Seeing Clarkâs arrogant demeanor, Nyla couldn't reconcile this man with the shy boy who had once blushed while confessing his love and promising never to hurt her. Maybe this was his true selfâselfish, proud, and condescending. "If being mature means tolerating your infidelity, then I'm sorry, I can't do that. Find someone else. Here are the divorce papers I've had drafted. Sign them when you have time." Clark glanced at the documents, sneering when he saw the section on asset division. "Quite the appetite you have, asking for half my assets. Do you really think that's possible?" "I deserve it. Why not?" Clark chuckled, his tone mocking. "Look around this house. Did you buy anything here? I've been covering your father's medical expenses for years. If we tally things up, you should be paying me. Should I have my lawyer do the math?" As Nyla watched his bitter expression, she couldn't believe she had once loved this man. He had hidden his true self so well that, until she caught him cheating, she had thought he was a great guy. "Don't forget, if it weren't for me giving you that patent, you wouldn't be the Sumner Group's CEO. And you were the one who told me to stay home after we got married. If I had continued my research, I would have earned far more than what you've given me." Unfazed, Clark replied, "Who would believe you about the patent now? "I don't want to argue about money, but if you insist on a divorce, we'll have to settle accounts. Nyla, as long as you drop the divorce idea, my money is still yours to use." "Clark, you're despicable!" Since he refused to divorce, she'd have to sue. She turned to leave, but he blocked her. "Change your clothes. We're going to the family dinner." "I said I'm not going. Tell them I'm not feeling well." Clark grabbed her wrist. "Nyla, I'm running out of patience. Don't force me to cut off your father's medical expenses." "You wouldn't dare!" Clark took out his phone and called his secretary. "Cancel my father-in-law's medical payment for next monthâ" Furious, Nyla grabbed his phone and ended the call. "You're crossing a line, Clark." "Crossing a line?" Clark's gaze was full of contempt as he yanked her closer. "Everything you have is because of me. Don't you think you're the one crossing the line? Change your clothes, or I have numerous ways to make you comply." Chapter 5 Seeing the coldness in Clark's eyes, Nyla realized how blind she had been to fall in love with such a man. Her eyes stung with unshed tears, but she refused to show any vulnerability in front of him. She yanked her hand away, took a deep breath, and headed upstairs. The only thought in her mind was to find a job quickly so she could move out and divorce Clark. She grabbed a random outfit, tied her hair up with a hairpin, and went back downstairs. She was never one to fuss over her appearance. In the past, she had dressed up for the Sumners' gatherings to make a good impression. Now, she couldn't care less. Hearing her footsteps, Clark looked up. Nyla wore a fitted white dress, her waist so slender it seemed it could be encircled with one hand. Her hair was secured with a jade hairpin, revealing her delicate neck. She was breathtakingly beautiful. The grace she exuded was just like when they first met. However, the look in her eyes now was devoid of any warmth. "Letâs go," she said. They drove to the Sumner residence in silence. As they arrived and were about to get out of the car, a black Range Rover sped up and stopped abruptly in front of them. Upon recognizing the car, Clark's expression darkened. It was Damon's car, someone he both feared and disliked. Damon was known for his reckless and unpredictable behavior. He had refused to take over the Sumner Group when Richard wanted him to run the company, choosing to start his own business instead. Everyone had expected him to fail, but within five years, his company had grown to be worth several times more than the Sumner Group. Clark couldn't stand Damon, partly out of jealousy. Once, a comment Clark made about Damon reached Damon's ears, and in retaliation, Damon refused to collaborate with the Sumner Group, costing them millions. Damon rarely attended family dinners, and Clark had hoped to avoid him. Luck wasnât on his side todayâthey met at the door. He didnât notice Nylaâs stiffened expression when she saw Damon get out of his car. Clark opened the car door and greeted, "Uncle Damon." Damon glanced at him indifferently, his gaze briefly landing on the passenger seat before he nodded and walked into the house. Nyla let out a deep breath. When Damon looked her way, she had forgotten to breathe, fearing he might say something outrageous. He was known for his unpredictable nature, always doing whatever he pleased. Fortunately, he said nothing. She decided she needed to talk to him privately later. As Clark and Nyla walked into the living room, they saw it was already filled with people. Richard and Marie, the family heads, were chatting with Damon. He was the kind of person who naturally stood out in a crowd. Noticing Nylaâs gaze on Damon, Clark frowned. "Why are you staring at my uncle?" Nyla withdrew her gaze and replied coolly, "None of your business." Her coldness irritated Clark. "Nyla, you know I donât like you paying attention to other men." Ever since they got together, Clark had been extremely controlling, not allowing Nyla to interact with other men. She used to think this was a sign of his love, but now it seemed laughable. She sneered. "And I donât like you sleeping with other women, but you seem to enjoy it just fine." Clark said through gritted teeth, "This is a family dinner. Weâll deal with this later." "If you donât want me to bring it up, then stay out of my business," she retorted. Clark didnât want to cause a scene now because it might affect the Sumner Group and his standing with Richard, who still held all the companyâs shares. As they talked, Marie called out, "Nyla, Clark, youâre here! Come sit down!" Nyla took a deep breath, forcing a smile as she approached. She might not like the Sumners, but she maintained basic manners. "Hello, Grandpa, Grandma," she greeted with a smile. Marie, who had been urging Damon to settle down and get married, looked pleased to see the couple. "Come, sit down." She turned to Damon with a hint of dissatisfaction. "Look at Clark. He manages the company well and has a beautiful wife. They might have children soon. And you? Almost 30 and still single. If you donât bring a girlfriend next time, donât bother coming!" Damon glanced at the couple with a smirk. "She is indeed beautiful." He just wondered how that petite frame would suffer if she were to have children. Nyla frowned, feeling uncomfortable with Damonâs gaze. Clark also noticed the inappropriate way Damon looked at Nyla. It wasnât the look of an elder but more like a man admiring a woman. His hand clenched into a fist, and his body tensed. Marie sighed. "My point is, when will you bring me a daughter-in-law?" "Depends. If I meet someone I like, maybe Iâll bring her back tomorrow," Damon replied nonchalantly. "Youâre too picky! Iâve arranged a good match for you. Date's tomorrow, donât ruin it." "Then youâll probably have to apologize to another old friend tomorrow." Frustrated, Marie snapped, âYouâre going to drive me crazy!â Damon glanced at Clark. âClark's been married for years. Instead of pushing me, why donât you encourage him to have kids?â Marie nodded, realizing Damon wouldnât listen to her. She turned to Nyla and Clark, her expression softening. âNyla, you and Clark have been married for a few years now. When are you planning to have children?â Chapter 6 Nyla lifted her head to speak, but Clark grabbed her hand and smiled. "Grandma, we're working on it!" Nyla tried to pull her hand away, but Clark's grip was too tight. If he wouldn't let her be, she wouldn't make it easy for him either. She turned to Marie. "Grandma, I'm looking for a job right now, so having children might have to wait." The room fell silent. Clark's grip on Nyla's hand tightened painfully, and she winced. Damon glanced at Clark's hand on Nyla, noticing the bulging veins, then looked away indifferently. Clarkâs aunt, Anne Sumner, sneered. "Nyla, don't blame me for being blunt. You've been married for years. How can you not have a child yet? If it weren't for Clark insisting on marrying you, do you think your family could have ever married into the Sumners? "You should be grateful. If you don't want to have Clark's child, there are plenty of women who do. If someone else steps in, youâll be the one looking silly." Besides, Anne thought, "Who knows if Nyla is fertile?" She sounded like she meant well, but her gaze at Nyla was filled with an air of superiority. Marie frowned at Anne, disapproving. "Anne, enough." Anne pursed her lips but stayed silent. Marie turned back to Nyla with a kind smile. "Nyla, you and Clark are still young. If you don't want children yet, that's fine. Just don't overwork yourself. Our family isn't short on money. You can work if you want, but take it easy." Nyla nodded. "I understand, Grandma." With that, the awkward moment passed, and the room returned to its previous warmth. Seeing the attention shift away, Clark pulled Nyla out of the living room. Once they reached the gazebo in the backyard, he released her. "Nyla, have you lost your mind? Do you want everyone to know about our fight?" Nyla rubbed her sore hand and said, "I was just being honest." "Honest?" Clark scowled. "Should I call your father then?" Harrison Jayston was ill and couldn't handle stress. Nyla planned to divorce Clark before breaking the news to him gently. She glared at Clark. "You wouldnât dare! You were the one who cheated. What right do you have to be so self-righteous?" Clark clenched his hands, a flicker of guilt crossing his face before it was replaced by impatience. "I promised it wouldnât happen again. If you don't want to see Jordyn, I'll fire her. What more do you want?" Nyla felt like there was a communication breakdown between them and turned away. "I don't want to argue with you here." When Clark saw her red-rimmed eyes, he softened. "Nyla, I truly know I was wrong. Just don't mention divorce, and I'll make it up to you. I love you. I can't let you go." Nyla found it laughable. How could he claim to love her while being with another woman? Just thinking about him with someone else made her sick. "I will never forgive you." Betrayal was her bottom line. She couldnât pretend nothing had happened or reconcile with him. Clark knew Nyla well enough to understand that he had to be patient. He believed she still had feelings for him. Otherwise, she would have made a bigger scene when she found out. As long as he refused to divorce her, she would eventually forgive him. "Fine, we won't talk about it now. If you don't want kids yet, weâll postpone it to two years later. Since you want to work, I'll have my secretary find you a position at the Sumner Group." Nyla laughed at his arrangement, a mocking look in her eyes. "Clark, do you see me as a puppet you can control?" Hurt by her gaze, Clark frowned. "How am I controlling you? You don't want kids now, so I agreed to wait two years. You want to work, so I'll arrange it. What more do you want?" "Stop pretending. I don't want kids because I want a divorce. I want to work to sever ties with you." Clark looked at Nyla's stubborn face, displeased. Since their wedding, she had been like a canary in his cage. He couldn't let her go. "As long as I don't agree, this marriage won't end. Even if you tell a lawyer I cheated, do you have proof?" Clark's confident tone and controlling demeanor made Nyla step back, trembling with anger. She finally saw how selfish and disgusting he was. She had wasted eight yearsâthe best years of her life, from 18 to 26âloving this man. "You make me sick, Clark!" Seeing the undisguised disgust in Nyla's eyes, Clar | LEARN_MORE | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692& | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 988 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | findedc.com | DCO | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/468455042_1262834138099234_1389968434765802098_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=WE3kUIHYboMQ7kNvgFHMCRw&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Al-BgLHW88QiakSkDEYKmPL&oh=00_AYBkj5qKAc1ryUVXY2Kd1MYG7wHnDhwveGA0PONReLRaCw&oe=678B7887 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,146 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664088}' |
Yes | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
đHOT! HOT!Do not read in publicďźđ | My husband and mate, Elijah, is the Alpha of one of the most powerful packs in Fenrisa, the Iron Claw Pack. I am his wife and his mate. One would think that due to being fated, our relationship would be a good one. But thatâs far from the truth. The truth is, I am his second chance mate. âVerena, I want to reject our bond and get separated,â Elijahâs voice doesn't hold an ounce of emotion as he sits across from me in the dim living room. I'd been waiting for him to celebrate our third wedding anniversary together. But when he arrived, there was this coldness about him. I figured he was just tired from work, but then he asked me to sit down and dropped a bombshell on me. "Why?" I blink in disbelief. He must be joking, right? But the intensity of his gaze chips away at my doubt, replacing it with a growing sense of worry. I know the reason. The one I've feared the most for so long. His mate has returned to the pack. Elijahâs first mate had left him just before the mating ceremony. The reason was unknown, but everyone assumed that she didnât want a relationship with her mate and loved someone else. On the same day of their separation, Elijah found me and realized that I am his second chance mate. Second chance mates are rare, and it can be called a miracle that the Goddess gives Elijah a second chance in love by mating us. He hasnât rejected his first mate, but one can find a second mate irrespective of rejecting their first mate. It's complicated and goes against the laws of the mate bond. Yet it's a blessing to the ones whose first mate dies or leaves them. Elijah sighs, âYou know about Nixie. She wants to be back with me.â I clench my fist. âAnd you want to get back with her?â My lips quiver, and I struggle to stop my body from trembling, but it's futile. Despite being Elijahâs second chance, heâs my first. My first mate, the only love of my life. No matter who your second chance is, the bond with the first mate is stronger, like the first love that you canât move on from. Elijah feels the same towards Nixie, I know, but can I simply accept it? His face remains aloof, âNixie needs me, Verena. She is my mate and my wolf needs her.â His first mate returned a week ago, claiming that she was kidnapped by our enemy pack and taken hostage for three years. The pack that captured her was destroyed due to a pack war, and the hostages were released. Thatâs how Nixie escaped and returned to our pack. "I canât have two mates at the same time. Having you both is putting a lot of pressure and weakening my wolf. Over time, itâll get worse. So, Iâll have to reject one," he adds in a calm voice, while a storm is rising in my chest. "And you choose her," I reply, tears brimming in my eyes. I knew that Elijah hadnât moved on from his first mate when I entered his life. But I had believed that I could heal him and show him that I can love him more. I did everything in my power to make him happy when we got married. Yet, sheâs the one he chooses. What about us? The relationship we built for all these years, does it mean nothing to him? When I walked into his life, he was emotionally unavailable and rude to me. But I stayed patient and he gradually started to warm up to me. Since then we had worked together on everything and he promised to stay beside me forever. I know that I wonât be able to bear him a healthy child because I did not shift after I turned eighteen and it's been five years since I have been wolf-less. But I felt the mate bond when I saw Elijah at the Mating Ball. He also agreed to marry me because his pack needed a Luna and it was better to have a second chance mate than have no mate at all. âYou said you'd never leave me. You promised me,â I remind him. âHow can you break it because of someone who left you years ago?â His icy presence sends a chill through the room. "Rena, watch your words. Remember who you're speaking to," he warns, his tone sharp like a blade. "And do you expect me to overlook the fact that you intentionally drove Nixie away because you wanted to be with me?" My brows raise, âWhat are you talking about?â He stands from the couch, âYou think I donât know? Nixie returned to this pack just one year after our marriage and wanted to meet me. But you met her first and threatened her to not come close to me and disappear from the pack.â A shadow falls on his chiseled face, making him look deadly and dangerous. I have always admired his ruthless side, especially when he makes sure to punish anyone who tries to hurt me. But today, heâs giving me this look as if heâs disgusted by me. âBecause of you, Nixie could not contact me and tell me what happened to her. I couldnât be there for her when she needed me. Just because of you.â He accuses me, and I feel like I have been stabbed in the chest. âI did not!â I say and he tilts his head as if he did not expect that response from me. As much as I want Elijah all to myself, I know that he feels empty without Nixie. So I would have accepted them being together, just for the sake of Elijahâs happiness. He raises a brow, âSo you are not going to admit it?â âAdmit what? I have no idea what you are talking about.â I protest. "Fine, I'll call him then," Elijah's obsidian eyes glaze over as he connects through the mind-link. Seconds later, the door swings open and Joshua walks inside. âWhatâs the matter?â He asks as he looks at both of us. He is Elijahâs Beta. âRena denies that she had not tried to kick Nixie out of the pack when she returned two years ago. Is that true?â I look at Joshua expectantly. He will tell Elijah the truth. I relax a little, waiting for the truth to come out. But why do I have this bad feeling? âNo, I saw her two years ago with the Luna,â Joshua replies calmly, with a subtle smile on his face. âThe Luna did threaten her and tell her to leave the pack.â What?! âJoshua, what the hell are you saying?! I didn't even meet Nixie!â I rise from my seat in shock and look at him in disbelief. âKeep your voice low, Rena. Joshua is saying what he saw and I am surprised that you believed heâd lie for you. After all, heâs the one who showed me pictures of your encounter with my mate.â Elijah throws the pictures on the table and it feels like someone has pulled the rug off my feet. These are from a different time. They are manipulated. I look at the Beta who gives me a smirk. He betrayed me. I thought we were good friends but⌠My shoulders slump as I look at the floor. This canât be happening. âDo you have any evidence that the Beta is lying?â Elijah asks. I donât have an answer. My head spins, trying to process everything that has happened. âNo,â I whisper. If I had known that heâll betray me like this, I would have been more cautious. But why would he do this? For a few minutes, silence hangs heavy in the air until Elijah gently grasps my chin, coaxing me to meet his gaze. His inky black hair falls messily across his face, reminding me of its softness when I touched it before. âIt's over, Rena. You knew how much I loved Nixie, yet you pushed her away from me. Then you pretended to love me when all you wanted was the power and wealth that comes with being my wife. I canât let any of this slip away.â he says, his voice gentle but deep and chilling. Pretend to love him? After all these years, he thinks it was an act. I know I donât have any evidence to prove my innocence, but wonât he try to believe me for once? I canât help but wonder if he would have believed Nixie if she was in my shoes. He would have probably forgiven her, because mates tend to be possessive of their partners. But he wonât treat me like that, because according to him, I am just his second chance. I am nothing compared to his first true mate, his first love. Tears glisten in my eyes as pain grips my heart. "Elijah, I mean it. I don't care about the position. I just want you." He growls, baring his canines and his eyes flash, âI had enough. You should be grateful that I am not imprisoning you for doing something like this. So if you donât want to live in the cells, I advise you to accept the divorce and the rejection.â He lets go of my chin and retrieves the divorce agreement. He slaps it onto the coffee table, making me flinch. "Sign it.â I stare at the papers with a bleeding heart. All the good memories I had with him flash in my head. What did all of those moments mean? Was it a lie when he said that I make him smile? That I am special to him? That our bond is no lesser than a first mate bond? I slowly bend forward, and grab the pen. I sign the paper while holding back my tears.âHere, it's done,â I whisper while holding the divorce agreement. For a brief moment, the iciness in his gaze melts, replaced by shock and hurt. But he swiftly regains his composure and accepts the paper from me. A sad smile curves my lips. So he would have gotten separated from me anyway. It did not matter what I did, he just needed a reason to reject me and have his mate back. âWhen is the rejection ceremony going to take place?â I ask while looking down at my trembling arms. If I see his face, Iâm afraid Iâll break down completely. âTomorrow. I expect you to be present at the training ground at eight in the morning. Once the rejection is over, you can stay at the packhouse. Though Iâd prefer if you donât come close to my mate. I donât want you to cause a scene.â he replied and it hurts how he calls Nixie âmy mateâ. I rise from my seat and turn around, âDonât worry, you wonât find me anywhere near you or Nixie after the rejection is over. Thatâll be my gift to you. Happy Marriage Anniversary, Alpha Elijah.â Chapter 2 : Her, Nixie Verena It's alright. Things will get better. Elijah will change his mind, after all he loves meâ- My trembling hand freezes halfway as I reach for the plate on the dining table. Tear droplets splatter on the polished darkwood, and the sight of our signatures on the divorce agreement brings me crashing back to reality. We're divorced, and tomorrow he will reject me. Not being able to pretend anymore, I break down into sobs. My fingers curl on the edge of the table while I look at the hardwood floor with tears streaming down my eyes. He really divorced me. My relationship with Elijah hasnât been a bed of roses. When we married, he was cold and distant. But I started to witness the softer, emotional side of him that he tried to hide from the rest of the world. I made his pain my own, and tried my best to keep him happy. He was gradually warming up to me. But then Nixie returned and he pushed me away like those years of our relationship meant nothing to him. My chest squeezes painfully at the thought of it. I just canât accept that he doesn't want me anymore. But the untouched food on the table, and the red velvet cake with Happy Third Marriage Anniversary written on it is a reminder that it's true. It took me almost four hours to bake this cake, in high hopes of seeing a smile on Elijahâs face when he returns. âAre you finished with your nonsense?â Maya, my maidâs voice, draws my attention to the door. She stands there with an annoyed expression, gesturing towards the wall. âUnlike you, I actually have work to do, like cleaning up this mess.â I wipe my face, and take a step back, âYes, go ahead.â My voice sounds dry. Maya rolls her eyes, her lips curl in disapproval as she walks over and eyes the table. âSuch a headache,â she mutters while shaking her head. Despite being Luna, I am not liked in the packhouse. It's because I am an orphan who did not shift. Even an omega has a wolf, so it makes me appear way beneath in rank. So the people donât approve of me as their Queen. Someone without a wolf canât lead a pack of wolves. Thatâs what I have always been told. I have learned to live with it because that is how I have always been treated. And forcing people to like me through fear of my position goes beyond my values, so I try to make up for my weakness by putting my best efforts. But Elijah has punished anyone who has tried to misbehave with me, always taking my side when things went down. He was very protective of me. Was. I wonder if he believes now Nixie will be a better Luna than me because of having a wolf. She comes from a family of Gammas, so she has a strong wolf and anyone will choose her over me. Rip! My body jolts at the sudden sound of something being torn off, and I notice Maya ruthlessly tearing the fairy lights and red balloons off the wall behind the table. With each delicate adornment being stripped away, I feel a prick in my chest. My friends Dory and Drake helped me set up the decorations last night, and we were so proud of it. Maya does not hold back on the food either, and I flinch at the way she just dumps the cake into the dustbin. I feel like that cake, dumped into trash. My head feels dizzy at the overwhelming emotions. I need a shower. I walk out of the dining hall, and my legs feel heavy for some reason. Now that I think about it, I've been feeling quite sick since this morning. My throat itches, I feel nauseous, and I've been unusually tired lately. Maybe it's because of Elijah. Not paying any attention to my surroundings, my hand subconsciously reaches to open the door to the bedroom. But the moment the door swings back, a pleasant musky scent hits my nose. Thereâs another scent with it that makes my nose crinkle. My body freezes in place when I notice Elijah sitting on the bed. With Nixie on his lap. With brown hair that brushes her shoulders in curls and a floral print mini skirt riding up her slender, milky white thighs, Nixie looks like any manâs wet dream. Compared to her, I look basic in my plain blue dress and straight midnight blue hair. They seem to be having a moment as her arms are wrapped around his neck, while his hand is on her slim waist. Elijah notices my presence, âRena,â he takes my name with his deep, velvety voice that tugs at my heart and lets go of Nixieâs waist. Nixie gets off his lap and stands beside him, fixing her skirt. âOh my Goddess, Rena. I-I didnât know you would be coming,â her pale skin turns red as if sheâs embarrassed. Even when I donât have a wolf, I can still feel the sting of their intimacy. My heart pounds painfully in my chest. âRena, why are you here?â Elijah asks, staring at me with his cold obsidian eyes. I canât tell what he is thinking. Chapter 3 : He, with Her Verena âIâŚumâŚâ the words feel stuck in my throat. My legs feel weak. I canât believe he started to get so intimate with her after a few hours of our divorce. If heâs this affectionate with her, then it means that he has already moved on. Though maybe he did not need to move on in the first place. âRena?â He takes my name again, and I regain my composure. I need to get a hold on myself. Heâs no longer my husband, and soon heâll reject me from the mate bond. So I shouldnât be feeling anything. âDid I interrupt something?â I ask, my gaze sliding to Nixie who stares at me with her big doe green eyes. Anyone would fall for the innocence those eyes portray, but I can see the malice behind it. Elijah narrows his gaze, and places a hand over his mouth. He does that when heâs curious, and annoyed. âYou did,â he replies sharply, and I'm struck by his words. âIââ âRena, you should remember that you need to ask for the Alphaâs permission before entering his room.â My lips part in shock, and my brows lift. âWhat?â âYou heard me. Still, Iâd let this go because we arenât officially rejected and you are my mate.â His voice puts me in an icy chokehold. Just a few hours, and our relationship has completely changed. Where is the man who waited for me every single night in bed to fall asleep together? Who is he? âWow, I did not know that it was your room now, Alpha. The same room we shared for three years,â I retort, crossing my arms. My eyes flit to the bed where he was sitting with Nixie on his lap. His jaw clenches at my words. âWe are divorced now. So isnât it obvious that we wonât be sharing the same room anymore?â He tilts his head, gauging my reaction. I smirk, âSure. I mean, you wonât like me barging into your âroomâ while you spend some quality time with your mate,â I emphasize the last word and my gaze shifts to Nixie. âRena, before you say something to insult Nixie, Iâll warn you. I have been lenient with you, but I wonât this time. So choose your words wisely.â He speaks in a low, commanding voice, reminding me of whoâs in charge. His words crush my soul. It's as if I am the problem in his life. âElijah, it's alright,â Nixie moves closer to him, and slides her hand over his shoulder. âI can understand that sheâs hurt so I am fine with it.â A growl leaves my lips as I stare at her hand placement. Elijah raises a brow, and I realize what I have done. Heâs still my mate, and it's not easy for me to watch someone else touch him, even if that person is his first mate. âIâI am sorry if I made you upset, Rena,â Nixie looks at me with quivering lips, âBut you have to understand that I love him and canât stay away from him.â Tears fill her eyes, and she starts to sob. âNixie, donât cry. It's not your fault,â Elijah gets up, and wraps an arm around her. My insides scream at that sight, but I donât let a word out of my mouth. I silently watch him comfort her when I am the one in need of comfort. âRena and I have come to a mutual agreement, so it's our decision.â I scowl. It was never my decision to get separated from him. Elijah looks at me with a pointed look, âYou did not tell me why you are here.â His voice is gentle as always, but I can tell that he does not want me here. He feels that I will sabotage his relationship with Nixie. My jaw trembles, âIt's nothing. I am sorry for interrupting whatever you both were doing,â I storm out of the door while the tears trickle down my eyes. The paintings and furniture on the hallway start to look unfamiliar as I rush past them. Why? Why do I have to go through this? My head starts to throb, and I stop in my steps. I feel dizzy. The nausea grows, crawling up my chest and through my blurry vision, I see two figures on the other side of the hall. They look concerned as they walk towards me. âLuna, are you alright?â I recognize the voice. It's Dory, âYou look no wellââ I donât hear the rest of her sentence as the air shifts, and I grace the floor. Shadows dance in my vision before everything turns dark. Beep. Beep. My eyes flutter open on hearing a sound, and I find myself in a hospital bed. A dull ache throbs in my head. âSheâs awake,â I feel Doryâs warm hand on my back as I slowly get up. She helps me sit. âThank Goddess!â Drake exclaims as he stands beside her. They are twins, and work for me in the pack. I groan, feeling the same throbbing sensation. âI passed out?â âYeah. We brought you to the hospital as soon as possible. Are you okay now?â Drake asks. I nod, âYeah.â The door opens, and a woman walks in wearing a white coat and holding a clipboard. "Oh, you're awake. That's good," she says with a smile as she approaches me. My gaze falls onto the tag on her coat. Dr. Shalini, Senior Gynaecologist. âIs it an infection?â I ask. Her smile widens, âNo, Luna. I have good news for you. I hope that the Alpha throws us a party after this.â she says and my frown deepens. My gaze shifts to Drake and Dory. Drake shrugs while Dory shakes her head. âI donât understand,â I say. âCongratulations, my Luna. You are going to be a mother.â she replies. Chapter 4 : A Baby? Verena The world seems to stop as I hear what she said. I amâŚcarrying a baby now? âWhat?â I gasp. The woman nods, her eyes glinting with excitement. âYes, Luna. I ran a USG scan, and it shows the pregnancy.â Dory shrieks, âOh my Goddess! That's wonderful news.â She grins at me, and hugs Drake, who is taken aback by her sisterâs excitement. The doctor looks at my confused expression and asks, âIs everything alright?â I stare at my lap. How can I be? Drake senses my confusion and turns to the doctor, âCan we have some time alone with her? Weâll call you if we need anything. Thank you for the news, doc.â âUm, alright,â she says hesitantly, giving me one last glance before walking out of the room. Dory senses the change in mood and asks me, âWhatâs wrong, Luna?â âI think I understand why she is confused,â Drake answers, and Dory looks at him. âWe all know that Luna does not have a wolf.â Doryâs brows shoot up in realization. âOh my, thatâs right. Then, how?â She looks at me, the colors of excitement on her face completely gone. A she-wolf who did not shift canât bear another male wolfâs child, let alone that of an Alphaâs child. Our genetics act like one of a normal human, and we are not compatible with carrying a shifterâs child. So how can I having a baby? âWe should get the report checked or tell them to run another test on you. The report can be wrong,â Drake says in a calm voice. He is always calm in these situations and looks at every problem through a logical perspective. As advised by Drake, I undergo another USG scan to confirm if the report is accurate or not. Dory insists that I get some rest, so I return to the packhouse after the test is over. She promises to bring me the test report, so I anxiously wait for her in one of my spare rooms. When the second test report arrives, my eyes stay glued to the report file, my hands trembling. Test resultâpositive. Sweet tears blur my vision. I canât believe this. âIt's really true, Luna. You are with child,â Dory remarks with a huge smile plastered on her face. My hand reaches to my belly. There is a life growing inside me. When I had not shifted after my 18th birthday, I had lost all hope of conceiving. Elijah was unhappy about my barren state, and it was another reason for him to act cold towards me in the initial stages of our marriage. An Alpha needs an heir, and I was incapable of providing one. âBut how is this possible? I never shifted,â I mutter. âI have a theory in my mind,â Dory replies as she stands before me with her hands crossed. I look up from the file, and a thoughtful look darkens her eyes, âThere have been a few cases where the shifter did not transform at the right age because their wolf was still in a developmental phase.â I raise a brow, âDevelopmental phase?â She hums, âMost wolves start to develop in our bodies from the time of our birth. The average age for any healthy transformation is from eighteen to nineteen. Usually, after that time, no shifter ever transforms, meaning their wolf could not grow properly because of the lack of strength in the personâs body. But there was this one case study in the Moonlight Pack where the Alpha got his wolf at the age of twenty-six. Rumor has it that his predecessors also got their wolves late.â âSo it's in the bloodline?â I ask, rubbing my belly, âIsnât the Moonlight Pack Alpha a powerful one who has magical powers?â She nods, âThatâs what everyone says. But recently, no one has seen the Alpha around, and some say that it's just baseless rumors. If he truly had magical powers, then he would have shown them, but thereâs no incident as such. Heâs been a mystery for the last ten years.â I hum in agreement. It's hard to tell what my condition is, but I donât care. If Elijah learns about this, I am sure heâll annul the divorce. He canât reject me after knowing that I have his baby. It will put the childâs life at risk. I need to tell him. He has to change his mind after this. He canât get separated from me if he knows that I am carrying his future heir. I get up from the bed and tell Dory, âIâll show this to the Alpha.â Not wasting another second, I am rushing out of the guestroom. Thank Selene! She has blessed me with a child. She believes that Elijah and I are meant to be together. A smile curves my lips. The moment I reach his office, I knock the door twice with my knuckles while excitement bubbles through me. I hear his deep voice through the door, âCome in.â I step in, feeling a little nervous as I find him sitting on his office chair, wearing his blue-light glasses with a white rim. They frame his obsidian eyes that scrutinize me. He looks so handsome in them. But then my gaze falls on Nixie, whose arm rests on his shoulder. She is way too close to him, and frowns when she notices me. It's not hard to see the malicious look in her eyes. Once I settle things with Elijah, Iâll make sure she never gets a chance to come close to him. âWhat brings you here, Rena?â Elijah asks, shifting his gaze to his computer screen. I am about to respond when he says, âI hope it's not ânothingâ like last time. You should know that I am a busy person, and my time has value." He speaks in a frosty demeanor that reminds me of winter. âI am carrying your baby, Elijah,â I say, hoping that the news will shock him. He has always been looking forward to having an heir. Now his wish has come true. Chapter 5: Will He Be Back? Verena His gaze lifts from the display screen and darkens with disappointment, âIs this your new trick to get me back?â he retorts, and the corner of Nixieâs lips curls into a smirk. I blink in confusion. Trick? âWhyâwhy would I trick you with something like this?â His jaw clenches, and the air turns cold with his icy gaze, âYou tell me, Rena. You want me to believe that without having a wolf, you can carry the child of an Alpha?â I flinch at his words. I am not proud of my condition. But it's out of my control. âI know it's hard to believe. I did not believe it either. Thatâs why I ran two tests to confirm the report. I am really carrying a baby.â I take a step towards his desk and hand him the file. He flips through it, his eyes going over the report. Nixie leans in to also check, and her face turns pale. It makes me a little happy. This child will be the one to save our relationship and this pack. âI get it now,â he says, staring at the table in thought, and I breathe in relief. âYou went to Shadow Den after the divorce for this reason. To create a fake pregnancy report.â He adds, and suddenly it feels like I have been punched in the gut. âWhat?! What are you talking about?â I ask, my eyes wide in horror. Shadow Den is a shady place at the borders of the pack where all kinds of illegal activities take place, including creating fake documents. A dignified lady will never step into that place because it reeks of crime and rogue trafficking. âI told my men to keep an eye on you, and they reported that you went to Shadow Den. At first, I couldnât believe it and punished them for lying to me. But now it seems that they were telling me the truth.â The look Elijah gives me completely shatters my soul. It feels like the respect he had for me is broken now. I shake my head frantically, âNo! I did not go there, Elijah. Please trust me!â He scoffs, his eyes swirling with hurt. âHow can I trust you when you are doing things behind my back? You know how much I have desired a child. It pains me to think you have gone this far.â âThatâs not true. I will never do something like this, you know that,â The corner of my eyes prick. How can he believe that I will fake childbirth? âI can prove myself this time. Call the hospital and ask if I had done a test there or not.â I raise my voice, holding my ground as much as I can. Elijah dials the number on his phone. He puts it on the loudspeaker and places it on the desk for me to hear. With each ring, my heart beats with anticipation. This has to work. The clinic keeps records of their patients. âLarsen's Clinic speaking. How may I help you, Alpha?â The female receptionistâs voice comes from the receiving end. Elijah places his hands on the desk and asks, âIs there any record of my wife Verena Donovan getting a USG test done today at your clinic?â âGive me a second please, Alpha,â the receptionist answers politely. Patient records are confidential, but since it's the Alpha asking for information, the hospital has to obey his orders. I fidget, waiting for her to confirm it. Each second feels like an hour, making me grow nervous. Her voice finally comes through, âThereâs no record of her checking in our clinic today, Alpha.â My heart drops, and for a second I forget how to breathe. No, this canât be possible. I was there. They saw me. Then, why? Elijah hangs up the phone. Nixieâs eyes glint with victory as she stares at me. The walls around the office feel like they are closing in on me. Why did the clinic lie? Is someone else behind this? My gaze shifts to Nixie, who has a smug look on her face. It is strange how she has been so silent and did not try to stop me from showing the reports. He sighs and takes off his glasses. âRena, look. Your excuses are not going to work on me. This rejection is going to happen because as an Alpha, I have to be with my rightful mate.â He rises from the chair and approaches me. Standing close to me, he adds âAnd I am letting you stay here. I wonât banish you from the pack, so you donât have to use these cheap tricks.â Cheap tricks? My hand goes to my belly. The man I have spent my life with for three years did not try to believe me for once. This proves that he never trusted me in all these years, and I thought that we had a good relationshipâone that was built out of mutual love and respect. It was all in my head. âThis is the extent of my kindness, Rena,â Elijah adds, âDonât test my patience any further.â I donât need his kindness. The only thing I wanted from him was to take my side, to have faith in me. But he pushed it all away. I decide to leave silently and walk towards the door. When I grab the handle with my shaking hand, his voice stops me. âRena.â I look over my shoulder and find him staring at me. There is something in his gaze. âI hope you remember the time of the rejection ceremony tomorrow. Donât try to bail on me because then Iâll have to force you to join me at the training grounds.â My chest tightens at the lack of empathy in his voice. âI wonât,â I hold back the tears that threaten to fall by clenching the doorknob tightly. He wants to get rid of me so badly. But I am worried about my child. I can only pray to have the strength to protect my baby from his rejection. Chapter 6 : Loveâs Not Enough Verena âSo, when is the Alpha throwing us a party?â Dory asks as she walks into my room with a cheerful smile. She does not know. The only thing she knows is that I went to Elijah to tell him the good news. âYou definitely have to tell me the names you are deciding on, especially if it's a girl. I donât want our princess to have a terrible name like mine. Also Iââ âWe are going to have a rejection ceremony today,â I say with a grim expression. Dory blinks a few times, âWhat? Thatâs such a bad joke.â My lips curve in a sad smile while I sit on the armchair, âIt's not.â The girlâs smile drops, âNo, thatâs not possible.â My gaze dips to the jar sheâs holding in her hand, âDid you bring the herbs I asked you to?â Her brows pucker, âYeah, I did. But the herbs you asked for are used to protect an unborn from any strong supernatural forces. Why would you ask for something likeââ her lips stop moving as her eyes light up with realization. There are certain herbs that protect an unborn child in the womb of a mother who gets rejected from her mate. I told her to bring one of those so that no harm comes to my baby. She stays still for a few seconds, âWhat? Iâ Are you really getting rejected?â I answer her with my silence. She stands still, as if processing everything. âThe Alpha...heâs behind this, isnât he?â she grits her teeth. âI should have known it. Something felt off about you staying in this room, and looking so pale.â She clenches her fist. I slowly rise from my armchair, âDory, calm down.â âNo for this case!â she slams the jar into the bedside, and stomps out of the room. Crap! I run up to her. Sheâs going to argue with Elijah. Stepping out of the room, I get hold of her wrist, and stop her, âStop! Donât do it.â She whips her head at me, rage burning like coal in her eyes, âLuna, I respect you. But I canât accept this. How can he do this to you? Iâll go and knock some sense into him!â âNo, no, no.â I pull her back. She is acting like a dog who has gone feral, and needs to be kept on a leash. Most of the time she is calm and rational. But when it comes to the people she cares for, she becomes hot-headed and does something regretful. If she talks back to Elijah, she can be put into the cells or even banished. âCalm down. This decision is mutual,â I say, and she freezes. She turns to me with a face as if lightning has struck her. âWhat about the child? How can you get separated when the future heir of this pack is growing inside you?â She points at my belly and I place my palm on it. Despite what the clinic said, I believe that a life is growing inside me. I can feel it in my bones. But I donât want to tell Dory everything. She does not need to be involved in my problems. "It's because of the new girl who joined the pack, isnât it?â Dory asks suddenly, and I jerk my head up at her, my heart skipping a beat. I did not expect her to catch on to it so quickly. She notices my face, âYou donât need to worry about her, Luna. Iâll teach her a lesson that sheâll run out of the borders of this pack and never look back,â she says with determination. I sigh. This girl has no sense of danger. âYouâll do nothing like that. Promise me.â She frowns, âButââ âI said what I said. Donât argue with your Luna,â I will be ex-Luna soon but there is time left for the rejection ceremony. So I will use my authority to make sure Dory does not put herself in danger. Her shoulders sag, and she reluctantly nods. âBut why are you not doing anything? Will you let another girl just take everything from you?â Her words prick me. I did try, but when Elijah wants me to step out of his life, then there is nothing I can do. Even our child could not save our relationship because he does not even believe in its existence. âIt's pointless. Also, it's better to end things. Our marriage was like an agreement and since he has no use for me now, the agreement has ended.â It was a mistake. If I had known that I would be treated like this after the return of his fated mate, I would have never agreed to this marriage. Second chance mates after all areâŚsecond choice, not first. âBut LunaâŚâ She steps closer to me, her brown eyes staring at me, âYou love him, more than your own life. I know you.â Her words squeeze my chest tightly and warm tears cover my vision. She has seen how much dedicated I have been to Elijah. I blink to push my tears back, and amidst the silence of the gloomy morning my words come out like a sad symphony, âMy love is not enough.â A tear slips down my left eye. Dory's eyes glisten with pain as she wraps her arms around me in a gentle embrace. The warmth of her act stirs something inside me, and I break down into sobs. Now that she's here, I realize how much I needed someone's presence to share my sorrow. With no parents or many friends whom I can trust to open up to, given my focus on work and Elijah, her presence feels like a cool shade after hours of walking in scorching heat. "I am so sorry this is happening to you. If the Alpha can't see how much you have sacrificed for him, then he does not deserve you!" she cries, and I hug her tighter. It brings me some relief knowing that there's someone for me. "Don't worry sweetheart, it's okay. I can make it." I pat Dory on the back. "Later I'll go to Elijah's room and get my stuff back, they must not want to see me in this house, and neither do I.â Chapter 7: Shattered Expectations An hour later, I step inside Elijahâs bedroom to get all my stuff. The walls of the room make me suffocated as it reminds me of the times we have spent here. Brushing those thoughts away, I focus on my task at hand. There is no point in staying in this packhouse so Iâll pack my things and leave. The money I have saved from my stock investments will get me to stay for six months in a five-star hotel. I will use that time to find a job. Since I have always been focused on my duties as the Luna of this pack, I never got the time to pursue anything else, especially my dream to open a bakery. Now that I no longer have any duties towards the pack, I can focus on my dream and have a bakery shop of my own. Feeling a little energetic from the idea, I start to pull out all my accessories from the drawer when my eyes fall on a photo frame. Bright blue sky, palm trees and sand fill the background before which stands a couple smiling at me. The ladyâs cheeks are pink, and the shine in her eyes is unavoidable as her man has his arm wrapped around her waist. âHaha! You canât catch me!â I scream as I run across the sand, the warmth of the sun on my skin, and the cool breeze tangling my hair. Elijah has a challenging look on his face as he chases me, but thereâs a subtle smile on his handsome sun-kissed face. Before I know it, his strong arms grab me from behind, âLooks like I won,â I gasp as he gently lifts me off my feet, my heart fluttering in my chest. With a playful smile, he swings me around. Our laughter mixes and rings in the air, the world fading away as we get lost into the moment. My hand trembles as I run my palm over the picture in the photo frame. Those were some of our best moments, filled with joy and sweetness. Our relationship wasnât one of love, but he was slowly warming up to me. "Oh, looks like there is a thief in here," Nixie's voice startles me as I find her standing inside the room. "How dare you try to steal my things?" she accuses me with her arms crossed. I look at the clothes that I am holding. "These are my things." She scoffs, "No more. Whatever you had before, it all belongs to me now. Including Elijah." Her words cut deep, and she smiles in satisfaction, enjoying the effect her words have on me. Her eyes lower to my hand, zeroing in on the ring I am wearing. I look at the diamond ring. It's a very special ring to me as Elijah gifted it to me on my birthday. "This ring will protect you from everything and my heart is in it. I give it to you," He said when he slid it onto my index finger. It's a rare diamond that can't be bought with money. "Hand over that ring right now," Nixie says, her eyes beaming with greed. I take a step back, holding my hand. "No." This ring means a lot to me. Even if I am separated from Elijah, I still want to keep a part of him with me forever. âI wonât say it again. Give it to me; it's my order! Your Lunaâs order,â she shouts. âYou'll never be my Luna. And I'm not giving this to you,â I reply confidently. âHow dare you!â she grabs my wrist forcefully, and I yelp as a sharp pain shoots through my finger to my spine as she pulls the ring out of me forcefully. âGive it to me or Iâll cut your fingers off, you useless lowly beast!â she yells. Instinctively, I push her away with my other hand, and she stumbles back onto someoneâs chest. My eyes go round when I see Elijah holding her from behind. His eyes are as cold as the Arctic, freezing me in my spot. âWhat is happening here?â âE-elijah,â Nixie starts crying, and wraps her arms around his neck, âIââ she sniffs, âI was only asking her how costly the ring is and she pushed me away.â She sobs like a baby. âThatâs not true. She was trying to take the ring from me!â I protest. âSo what if she did?â he asks, his face like a carved stone with no emotions. I stare at him, trying to process what he said for a moment. âI told her that she can have the ring when she asked me about it.â My eyes widen in disbelief, unblinking as they stare at him. Time stands still. I canât believe what he is saying. âHand over the ring to her, Rena,â he demands in a frosty voice. My feet feel glued to the floor. Nixieâs lips curl in a smile as she watches me in despair. The room closes around me, suffocating me with the weight of its shattered expectations. My lips curve upwards, a smile tugging at the corners of my mouth. It's devoid of any joy and is a mask to hide the emptiness within. Why did I even hope that heâll care for me? Stupid, stupid me. I walk towards them and pull out the ring from my finger. âHere, take it,â I say while the smile remains intact. âYou can have everything else here too. I donât want it anymore.â It's exhausting to keep hoping that things will change, that heâll take me back. Those are my last words, and I walk out of the room, accepting my defeat. Nixie wins, I lose. Suddenly, I feel a hand grab my wrist from behind and hear Elijahâs voice, âRena.â I freeze. His voice is so gentle. My heart pounds in my chest, and I look past my shoulder to meet his black eyes. âThe rejection ceremony is going to start soon. Iâll wait for you at the training grounds.â Chapter 8 : The Rejection Verena I smile, while my heart breaks in pain. He is so good at crushing my heart, like it's an object. âI will be there in time.â Saying that, I pull my hand away from him, engraving his touch for the last time in my head. A while later, I look at my reflection in the mirror. Dark eye bags hang under my green eyes, like someone has sucked the soul out of me. Only half an hour left before the ceremony begins, and after that, I will be separated from Elijah completely. I have mentally prepared myself for it, but physically, I am in a mess. Nixie took all my clothes and accessories, even the ones I bought myself. I am not that interested in fashion, so most of my clothes and jewelry were gifted by Elijah. So now, I have nothing to wear except this dress that I have on. My hands tremble a little in concern. Without anything, it will be hard for me to survive. But then I remind myself that I will be a mother soon. Stress is not good for the baby. I rub my belly, âMamma promises to be strong from now on. You hang in there, pup.â I will need to dip into some of my savings to purchase new clothes and other necessities. But first, I must find a good hotel to stay in. My thoughts are interrupted by the loud sound of footsteps, and my face sours when I see Nixie walk in through the door, looking very chirpy. Now, what does she want? "Why are you here?" I ask in frustration, deciding not to turn around and act as though I am busy. Searching for hotels will be a better use of my time. I feel her close in, and she waves her hand before my face from behind. My gaze falls on the diamond ring on her finger, the ring I thought Elijah had gifted me as a sign of his love. My heart crumbles at the sight of it. "It suits me more than you, doesn't it? Elijah said that it looks better on me," she giggles, adding salt to my wound. I intentionally stay silent and focus on scrolling through a site that shows the various hotels available with their ratings and reviews. "Hello? I am talking to you!" she waves her hand again, clearly annoyed by not receiving her expected response. I refuse to give her the satisfaction of seeing me in pain, so I continue to avoid her. There's a groan from behind before she slaps my phone away, causing it to hit the hard, hardwood floor. I gasp at its state and immediately pick it up. The screen has cracked. "Now, that's a proper reaction," she says, smirking. Clenching my jaw, I face her. "Whatâs your problem, you mad woman?! I have divorced Elijah, and we are rejecting each other. That should be more than enough for you!" She sneers at me. "Don't act like you're doing me a favor. Actually, I'll do you a favor. Once you're rejected, I'll make sure you get banished after that." My face drains of all colors. Banishment? No! If I'm banished, I'll become a rogue with nowhere to live and no means to survive. That's assuming I don't get hurt by the dangerous creatures outside the borders or get captured by rogue traffickers who might sell me to some nasty, old Alpha as a slave first. I can't let my child be born in those circumstances. "Why? I'll leave this packhouse after rejection, so I won't be a threat to you anymore," I protest. She scowls. "Of course you are. I don't know what Elijah saw in you, but he seems to still care about you. He was telling me to return your clothes since he gave them to you," she rolls her eyes, "And he won't allow me to turn you into a slave for this packhouse either. So it means you're a threat to my position." I gulp, feeling a little relieved knowing that Elijah said that. But it's quickly replaced by Nixie's warning. "Be prepared to be kicked out. See you in the training grounds," she waves her hand and walks away humming a tune. My legs give out, and I collapse to the floor. My fingers curl around the bedsheet for support as I try to calm the crumbling anxiety inside me. What do I do now? I can't become a rogue. Dory walks in, her eyes falling on me. "Luna, are you okay?" she rushes up to me and helps me stand. She touches my forehead. "You're burning up. Did something happen?" I shake my head. "I'm fine. Is it time?" Her face falls, and she nods once. Taking a deep breath, I gather some courage. "Alright, let's go." Chapter 9 : Rejection I have to fight this. If Nixie wins, my pup will be in danger. I won't let that happen. We walk down the stairs and step outside. The sky is filled with gray clouds. On the large training grounds where the air usually buzzes with excitement and the energy of warriors, there's a damp, silent atmosphere among the people who came to watch the ceremony. None of them seem sad to watch me get rejected. They've never wanted me as their Luna because I'm an orphan. I take my place in the center of the ground. The people on the left clear a path for Elijah to walk through by standing in two rows, and he stops before the space created for the ceremony. Our eyes meet for a few seconds before he turns to the crowd. âI wonât waste time on explaining whatâs happening here as most of you present are already aware. But know that I wonât tolerate anyone breaking the rules. If anyone dares to say a bad word to Verena or insults her in any way, I will have your head. Rejected or not, she is still a respected member of our family and this pack. So you all are expected to treat her fairly. Is that clear?â The people nod in unison, fearing Elijahâs wrath. A part of me is glad that he is rejecting me in a respectful manner. It would have hurt a lot more if he just allowed anyone to publicly berate me, especially when I go through the rejection. Elijah walks closer to me, and looks into my eyes. I feel his breathing was a little erratic and his face didn't look quite right.. Is he drunk? "I, Elijah Donovan, Alpha of the Iron Claw Pack, reject you, Verena, as my fated mate and my Luna," he declares. I close my eyes, attempting to block out the pain threatening to consume me. But even in the darkness behind my eyelids, I feel the strength of the rejection, as it threatens to tear my body apart. The pain rattles through my bones, clogging my nostrils and leaving me breathless. Elijah extends his arm to help me, but I take a step back. I will endure this pain alone. "I, Verena, current Luna of the Iron Claw Pack, accept your rejection, Alpha Elijah," I declare. My legs wobble beneath my dress as the ache in my chest intensifies. I feel a strong convulsion in my belly, causing me to lose my balance and drop to the ground, clutching my stomach. My baby! "Rena, are you alright?" Elijah inquires, but I know better than to believe that he actually cares for me. Gradually, the pain subsides, and I feel the herbs taking action to protect my baby from the effects of the rejection. "I am fine," I manage to say, wiping my tear-soaked face. "You accepted it," he mutters under his breath. Was he not expecting it? I donât even understand him at this point. My limbs feel weak, so I remain in my place, trying to prevent myself from passing out. Just as I begin to feel like I have regained some control over my body, a strong scent hits my nose. It smells like lemons and grass, reminiscent of summer. I glance in the direction from which it's coming and spot a man walking into the crowd, looking around anxiously. Heâs as tall as Elijah, broad and well-built, with spiky light-blond hair, deep blue eyes, and a tattoo running down his left arm. His aura is powerful, like that of an Alpha. The moment his eyes land on me, he growls ferociously, his wolf showing in his eyes, "Mine!" | LEARN_MORE | https://wwwedb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=16560&u | New world publications | https://www.facebook.com/100090352943774/ | 3,782 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | wwwedb.com | DCO | https://wwwedb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=16560&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/470211616_1089749272699128_268792006170706946_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=100&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=0MC8cm6ASRMQ7kNvgFhkQQp&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AtQ23ouK47Om0vQ51H86oMr&oh=00_AYCnEFQJhX0TDbTdFa_l5dWXTrLUMkrTgxGMxrUMIE2jLA&oe=678B7B9C | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | New world publications | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,116 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664088}' |
Yes | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
đHOT! HOT!Do not read in publicďźđ | My husband and mate, Elijah, is the Alpha of one of the most powerful packs in Fenrisa, the Iron Claw Pack. I am his wife and his mate. One would think that due to being fated, our relationship would be a good one. But thatâs far from the truth. The truth is, I am his second chance mate. âVerena, I want to reject our bond and get separated,â Elijahâs voice doesn't hold an ounce of emotion as he sits across from me in the dim living room. I'd been waiting for him to celebrate our third wedding anniversary together. But when he arrived, there was this coldness about him. I figured he was just tired from work, but then he asked me to sit down and dropped a bombshell on me. "Why?" I blink in disbelief. He must be joking, right? But the intensity of his gaze chips away at my doubt, replacing it with a growing sense of worry. I know the reason. The one I've feared the most for so long. His mate has returned to the pack. Elijahâs first mate had left him just before the mating ceremony. The reason was unknown, but everyone assumed that she didnât want a relationship with her mate and loved someone else. On the same day of their separation, Elijah found me and realized that I am his second chance mate. Second chance mates are rare, and it can be called a miracle that the Goddess gives Elijah a second chance in love by mating us. He hasnât rejected his first mate, but one can find a second mate irrespective of rejecting their first mate. It's complicated and goes against the laws of the mate bond. Yet it's a blessing to the ones whose first mate dies or leaves them. Elijah sighs, âYou know about Nixie. She wants to be back with me.â I clench my fist. âAnd you want to get back with her?â My lips quiver, and I struggle to stop my body from trembling, but it's futile. Despite being Elijahâs second chance, heâs my first. My first mate, the only love of my life. No matter who your second chance is, the bond with the first mate is stronger, like the first love that you canât move on from. Elijah feels the same towards Nixie, I know, but can I simply accept it? His face remains aloof, âNixie needs me, Verena. She is my mate and my wolf needs her.â His first mate returned a week ago, claiming that she was kidnapped by our enemy pack and taken hostage for three years. The pack that captured her was destroyed due to a pack war, and the hostages were released. Thatâs how Nixie escaped and returned to our pack. "I canât have two mates at the same time. Having you both is putting a lot of pressure and weakening my wolf. Over time, itâll get worse. So, Iâll have to reject one," he adds in a calm voice, while a storm is rising in my chest. "And you choose her," I reply, tears brimming in my eyes. I knew that Elijah hadnât moved on from his first mate when I entered his life. But I had believed that I could heal him and show him that I can love him more. I did everything in my power to make him happy when we got married. Yet, sheâs the one he chooses. What about us? The relationship we built for all these years, does it mean nothing to him? When I walked into his life, he was emotionally unavailable and rude to me. But I stayed patient and he gradually started to warm up to me. Since then we had worked together on everything and he promised to stay beside me forever. I know that I wonât be able to bear him a healthy child because I did not shift after I turned eighteen and it's been five years since I have been wolf-less. But I felt the mate bond when I saw Elijah at the Mating Ball. He also agreed to marry me because his pack needed a Luna and it was better to have a second chance mate than have no mate at all. âYou said you'd never leave me. You promised me,â I remind him. âHow can you break it because of someone who left you years ago?â His icy presence sends a chill through the room. "Rena, watch your words. Remember who you're speaking to," he warns, his tone sharp like a blade. "And do you expect me to overlook the fact that you intentionally drove Nixie away because you wanted to be with me?" My brows raise, âWhat are you talking about?â He stands from the couch, âYou think I donât know? Nixie returned to this pack just one year after our marriage and wanted to meet me. But you met her first and threatened her to not come close to me and disappear from the pack.â A shadow falls on his chiseled face, making him look deadly and dangerous. I have always admired his ruthless side, especially when he makes sure to punish anyone who tries to hurt me. But today, heâs giving me this look as if heâs disgusted by me. âBecause of you, Nixie could not contact me and tell me what happened to her. I couldnât be there for her when she needed me. Just because of you.â He accuses me, and I feel like I have been stabbed in the chest. âI did not!â I say and he tilts his head as if he did not expect that response from me. As much as I want Elijah all to myself, I know that he feels empty without Nixie. So I would have accepted them being together, just for the sake of Elijahâs happiness. He raises a brow, âSo you are not going to admit it?â âAdmit what? I have no idea what you are talking about.â I protest. "Fine, I'll call him then," Elijah's obsidian eyes glaze over as he connects through the mind-link. Seconds later, the door swings open and Joshua walks inside. âWhatâs the matter?â He asks as he looks at both of us. He is Elijahâs Beta. âRena denies that she had not tried to kick Nixie out of the pack when she returned two years ago. Is that true?â I look at Joshua expectantly. He will tell Elijah the truth. I relax a little, waiting for the truth to come out. But why do I have this bad feeling? âNo, I saw her two years ago with the Luna,â Joshua replies calmly, with a subtle smile on his face. âThe Luna did threaten her and tell her to leave the pack.â What?! âJoshua, what the hell are you saying?! I didn't even meet Nixie!â I rise from my seat in shock and look at him in disbelief. âKeep your voice low, Rena. Joshua is saying what he saw and I am surprised that you believed heâd lie for you. After all, heâs the one who showed me pictures of your encounter with my mate.â Elijah throws the pictures on the table and it feels like someone has pulled the rug off my feet. These are from a different time. They are manipulated. I look at the Beta who gives me a smirk. He betrayed me. I thought we were good friends but⌠My shoulders slump as I look at the floor. This canât be happening. âDo you have any evidence that the Beta is lying?â Elijah asks. I donât have an answer. My head spins, trying to process everything that has happened. âNo,â I whisper. If I had known that heâll betray me like this, I would have been more cautious. But why would he do this? For a few minutes, silence hangs heavy in the air until Elijah gently grasps my chin, coaxing me to meet his gaze. His inky black hair falls messily across his face, reminding me of its softness when I touched it before. âIt's over, Rena. You knew how much I loved Nixie, yet you pushed her away from me. Then you pretended to love me when all you wanted was the power and wealth that comes with being my wife. I canât let any of this slip away.â he says, his voice gentle but deep and chilling. Pretend to love him? After all these years, he thinks it was an act. I know I donât have any evidence to prove my innocence, but wonât he try to believe me for once? I canât help but wonder if he would have believed Nixie if she was in my shoes. He would have probably forgiven her, because mates tend to be possessive of their partners. But he wonât treat me like that, because according to him, I am just his second chance. I am nothing compared to his first true mate, his first love. Tears glisten in my eyes as pain grips my heart. "Elijah, I mean it. I don't care about the position. I just want you." He growls, baring his canines and his eyes flash, âI had enough. You should be grateful that I am not imprisoning you for doing something like this. So if you donât want to live in the cells, I advise you to accept the divorce and the rejection.â He lets go of my chin and retrieves the divorce agreement. He slaps it onto the coffee table, making me flinch. "Sign it.â I stare at the papers with a bleeding heart. All the good memories I had with him flash in my head. What did all of those moments mean? Was it a lie when he said that I make him smile? That I am special to him? That our bond is no lesser than a first mate bond? I slowly bend forward, and grab the pen. I sign the paper while holding back my tears.âHere, it's done,â I whisper while holding the divorce agreement. For a brief moment, the iciness in his gaze melts, replaced by shock and hurt. But he swiftly regains his composure and accepts the paper from me. A sad smile curves my lips. So he would have gotten separated from me anyway. It did not matter what I did, he just needed a reason to reject me and have his mate back. âWhen is the rejection ceremony going to take place?â I ask while looking down at my trembling arms. If I see his face, Iâm afraid Iâll break down completely. âTomorrow. I expect you to be present at the training ground at eight in the morning. Once the rejection is over, you can stay at the packhouse. Though Iâd prefer if you donât come close to my mate. I donât want you to cause a scene.â he replied and it hurts how he calls Nixie âmy mateâ. I rise from my seat and turn around, âDonât worry, you wonât find me anywhere near you or Nixie after the rejection is over. Thatâll be my gift to you. Happy Marriage Anniversary, Alpha Elijah.â Chapter 2 : Her, Nixie Verena It's alright. Things will get better. Elijah will change his mind, after all he loves meâ- My trembling hand freezes halfway as I reach for the plate on the dining table. Tear droplets splatter on the polished darkwood, and the sight of our signatures on the divorce agreement brings me crashing back to reality. We're divorced, and tomorrow he will reject me. Not being able to pretend anymore, I break down into sobs. My fingers curl on the edge of the table while I look at the hardwood floor with tears streaming down my eyes. He really divorced me. My relationship with Elijah hasnât been a bed of roses. When we married, he was cold and distant. But I started to witness the softer, emotional side of him that he tried to hide from the rest of the world. I made his pain my own, and tried my best to keep him happy. He was gradually warming up to me. But then Nixie returned and he pushed me away like those years of our relationship meant nothing to him. My chest squeezes painfully at the thought of it. I just canât accept that he doesn't want me anymore. But the untouched food on the table, and the red velvet cake with Happy Third Marriage Anniversary written on it is a reminder that it's true. It took me almost four hours to bake this cake, in high hopes of seeing a smile on Elijahâs face when he returns. âAre you finished with your nonsense?â Maya, my maidâs voice, draws my attention to the door. She stands there with an annoyed expression, gesturing towards the wall. âUnlike you, I actually have work to do, like cleaning up this mess.â I wipe my face, and take a step back, âYes, go ahead.â My voice sounds dry. Maya rolls her eyes, her lips curl in disapproval as she walks over and eyes the table. âSuch a headache,â she mutters while shaking her head. Despite being Luna, I am not liked in the packhouse. It's because I am an orphan who did not shift. Even an omega has a wolf, so it makes me appear way beneath in rank. So the people donât approve of me as their Queen. Someone without a wolf canât lead a pack of wolves. Thatâs what I have always been told. I have learned to live with it because that is how I have always been treated. And forcing people to like me through fear of my position goes beyond my values, so I try to make up for my weakness by putting my best efforts. But Elijah has punished anyone who has tried to misbehave with me, always taking my side when things went down. He was very protective of me. Was. I wonder if he believes now Nixie will be a better Luna than me because of having a wolf. She comes from a family of Gammas, so she has a strong wolf and anyone will choose her over me. Rip! My body jolts at the sudden sound of something being torn off, and I notice Maya ruthlessly tearing the fairy lights and red balloons off the wall behind the table. With each delicate adornment being stripped away, I feel a prick in my chest. My friends Dory and Drake helped me set up the decorations last night, and we were so proud of it. Maya does not hold back on the food either, and I flinch at the way she just dumps the cake into the dustbin. I feel like that cake, dumped into trash. My head feels dizzy at the overwhelming emotions. I need a shower. I walk out of the dining hall, and my legs feel heavy for some reason. Now that I think about it, I've been feeling quite sick since this morning. My throat itches, I feel nauseous, and I've been unusually tired lately. Maybe it's because of Elijah. Not paying any attention to my surroundings, my hand subconsciously reaches to open the door to the bedroom. But the moment the door swings back, a pleasant musky scent hits my nose. Thereâs another scent with it that makes my nose crinkle. My body freezes in place when I notice Elijah sitting on the bed. With Nixie on his lap. With brown hair that brushes her shoulders in curls and a floral print mini skirt riding up her slender, milky white thighs, Nixie looks like any manâs wet dream. Compared to her, I look basic in my plain blue dress and straight midnight blue hair. They seem to be having a moment as her arms are wrapped around his neck, while his hand is on her slim waist. Elijah notices my presence, âRena,â he takes my name with his deep, velvety voice that tugs at my heart and lets go of Nixieâs waist. Nixie gets off his lap and stands beside him, fixing her skirt. âOh my Goddess, Rena. I-I didnât know you would be coming,â her pale skin turns red as if sheâs embarrassed. Even when I donât have a wolf, I can still feel the sting of their intimacy. My heart pounds painfully in my chest. âRena, why are you here?â Elijah asks, staring at me with his cold obsidian eyes. I canât tell what he is thinking. Chapter 3 : He, with Her Verena âIâŚumâŚâ the words feel stuck in my throat. My legs feel weak. I canât believe he started to get so intimate with her after a few hours of our divorce. If heâs this affectionate with her, then it means that he has already moved on. Though maybe he did not need to move on in the first place. âRena?â He takes my name again, and I regain my composure. I need to get a hold on myself. Heâs no longer my husband, and soon heâll reject me from the mate bond. So I shouldnât be feeling anything. âDid I interrupt something?â I ask, my gaze sliding to Nixie who stares at me with her big doe green eyes. Anyone would fall for the innocence those eyes portray, but I can see the malice behind it. Elijah narrows his gaze, and places a hand over his mouth. He does that when heâs curious, and annoyed. âYou did,â he replies sharply, and I'm struck by his words. âIââ âRena, you should remember that you need to ask for the Alphaâs permission before entering his room.â My lips part in shock, and my brows lift. âWhat?â âYou heard me. Still, Iâd let this go because we arenât officially rejected and you are my mate.â His voice puts me in an icy chokehold. Just a few hours, and our relationship has completely changed. Where is the man who waited for me every single night in bed to fall asleep together? Who is he? âWow, I did not know that it was your room now, Alpha. The same room we shared for three years,â I retort, crossing my arms. My eyes flit to the bed where he was sitting with Nixie on his lap. His jaw clenches at my words. âWe are divorced now. So isnât it obvious that we wonât be sharing the same room anymore?â He tilts his head, gauging my reaction. I smirk, âSure. I mean, you wonât like me barging into your âroomâ while you spend some quality time with your mate,â I emphasize the last word and my gaze shifts to Nixie. âRena, before you say something to insult Nixie, Iâll warn you. I have been lenient with you, but I wonât this time. So choose your words wisely.â He speaks in a low, commanding voice, reminding me of whoâs in charge. His words crush my soul. It's as if I am the problem in his life. âElijah, it's alright,â Nixie moves closer to him, and slides her hand over his shoulder. âI can understand that sheâs hurt so I am fine with it.â A growl leaves my lips as I stare at her hand placement. Elijah raises a brow, and I realize what I have done. Heâs still my mate, and it's not easy for me to watch someone else touch him, even if that person is his first mate. âIâI am sorry if I made you upset, Rena,â Nixie looks at me with quivering lips, âBut you have to understand that I love him and canât stay away from him.â Tears fill her eyes, and she starts to sob. âNixie, donât cry. It's not your fault,â Elijah gets up, and wraps an arm around her. My insides scream at that sight, but I donât let a word out of my mouth. I silently watch him comfort her when I am the one in need of comfort. âRena and I have come to a mutual agreement, so it's our decision.â I scowl. It was never my decision to get separated from him. Elijah looks at me with a pointed look, âYou did not tell me why you are here.â His voice is gentle as always, but I can tell that he does not want me here. He feels that I will sabotage his relationship with Nixie. My jaw trembles, âIt's nothing. I am sorry for interrupting whatever you both were doing,â I storm out of the door while the tears trickle down my eyes. The paintings and furniture on the hallway start to look unfamiliar as I rush past them. Why? Why do I have to go through this? My head starts to throb, and I stop in my steps. I feel dizzy. The nausea grows, crawling up my chest and through my blurry vision, I see two figures on the other side of the hall. They look concerned as they walk towards me. âLuna, are you alright?â I recognize the voice. It's Dory, âYou look no wellââ I donât hear the rest of her sentence as the air shifts, and I grace the floor. Shadows dance in my vision before everything turns dark. Beep. Beep. My eyes flutter open on hearing a sound, and I find myself in a hospital bed. A dull ache throbs in my head. âSheâs awake,â I feel Doryâs warm hand on my back as I slowly get up. She helps me sit. âThank Goddess!â Drake exclaims as he stands beside her. They are twins, and work for me in the pack. I groan, feeling the same throbbing sensation. âI passed out?â âYeah. We brought you to the hospital as soon as possible. Are you okay now?â Drake asks. I nod, âYeah.â The door opens, and a woman walks in wearing a white coat and holding a clipboard. "Oh, you're awake. That's good," she says with a smile as she approaches me. My gaze falls onto the tag on her coat. Dr. Shalini, Senior Gynaecologist. âIs it an infection?â I ask. Her smile widens, âNo, Luna. I have good news for you. I hope that the Alpha throws us a party after this.â she says and my frown deepens. My gaze shifts to Drake and Dory. Drake shrugs while Dory shakes her head. âI donât understand,â I say. âCongratulations, my Luna. You are going to be a mother.â she replies. Chapter 4 : A Baby? Verena The world seems to stop as I hear what she said. I amâŚcarrying a baby now? âWhat?â I gasp. The woman nods, her eyes glinting with excitement. âYes, Luna. I ran a USG scan, and it shows the pregnancy.â Dory shrieks, âOh my Goddess! That's wonderful news.â She grins at me, and hugs Drake, who is taken aback by her sisterâs excitement. The doctor looks at my confused expression and asks, âIs everything alright?â I stare at my lap. How can I be? Drake senses my confusion and turns to the doctor, âCan we have some time alone with her? Weâll call you if we need anything. Thank you for the news, doc.â âUm, alright,â she says hesitantly, giving me one last glance before walking out of the room. Dory senses the change in mood and asks me, âWhatâs wrong, Luna?â âI think I understand why she is confused,â Drake answers, and Dory looks at him. âWe all know that Luna does not have a wolf.â Doryâs brows shoot up in realization. âOh my, thatâs right. Then, how?â She looks at me, the colors of excitement on her face completely gone. A she-wolf who did not shift canât bear another male wolfâs child, let alone that of an Alphaâs child. Our genetics act like one of a normal human, and we are not compatible with carrying a shifterâs child. So how can I having a baby? âWe should get the report checked or tell them to run another test on you. The report can be wrong,â Drake says in a calm voice. He is always calm in these situations and looks at every problem through a logical perspective. As advised by Drake, I undergo another USG scan to confirm if the report is accurate or not. Dory insists that I get some rest, so I return to the packhouse after the test is over. She promises to bring me the test report, so I anxiously wait for her in one of my spare rooms. When the second test report arrives, my eyes stay glued to the report file, my hands trembling. Test resultâpositive. Sweet tears blur my vision. I canât believe this. âIt's really true, Luna. You are with child,â Dory remarks with a huge smile plastered on her face. My hand reaches to my belly. There is a life growing inside me. When I had not shifted after my 18th birthday, I had lost all hope of conceiving. Elijah was unhappy about my barren state, and it was another reason for him to act cold towards me in the initial stages of our marriage. An Alpha needs an heir, and I was incapable of providing one. âBut how is this possible? I never shifted,â I mutter. âI have a theory in my mind,â Dory replies as she stands before me with her hands crossed. I look up from the file, and a thoughtful look darkens her eyes, âThere have been a few cases where the shifter did not transform at the right age because their wolf was still in a developmental phase.â I raise a brow, âDevelopmental phase?â She hums, âMost wolves start to develop in our bodies from the time of our birth. The average age for any healthy transformation is from eighteen to nineteen. Usually, after that time, no shifter ever transforms, meaning their wolf could not grow properly because of the lack of strength in the personâs body. But there was this one case study in the Moonlight Pack where the Alpha got his wolf at the age of twenty-six. Rumor has it that his predecessors also got their wolves late.â âSo it's in the bloodline?â I ask, rubbing my belly, âIsnât the Moonlight Pack Alpha a powerful one who has magical powers?â She nods, âThatâs what everyone says. But recently, no one has seen the Alpha around, and some say that it's just baseless rumors. If he truly had magical powers, then he would have shown them, but thereâs no incident as such. Heâs been a mystery for the last ten years.â I hum in agreement. It's hard to tell what my condition is, but I donât care. If Elijah learns about this, I am sure heâll annul the divorce. He canât reject me after knowing that I have his baby. It will put the childâs life at risk. I need to tell him. He has to change his mind after this. He canât get separated from me if he knows that I am carrying his future heir. I get up from the bed and tell Dory, âIâll show this to the Alpha.â Not wasting another second, I am rushing out of the guestroom. Thank Selene! She has blessed me with a child. She believes that Elijah and I are meant to be together. A smile curves my lips. The moment I reach his office, I knock the door twice with my knuckles while excitement bubbles through me. I hear his deep voice through the door, âCome in.â I step in, feeling a little nervous as I find him sitting on his office chair, wearing his blue-light glasses with a white rim. They frame his obsidian eyes that scrutinize me. He looks so handsome in them. But then my gaze falls on Nixie, whose arm rests on his shoulder. She is way too close to him, and frowns when she notices me. It's not hard to see the malicious look in her eyes. Once I settle things with Elijah, Iâll make sure she never gets a chance to come close to him. âWhat brings you here, Rena?â Elijah asks, shifting his gaze to his computer screen. I am about to respond when he says, âI hope it's not ânothingâ like last time. You should know that I am a busy person, and my time has value." He speaks in a frosty demeanor that reminds me of winter. âI am carrying your baby, Elijah,â I say, hoping that the news will shock him. He has always been looking forward to having an heir. Now his wish has come true. Chapter 5: Will He Be Back? Verena His gaze lifts from the display screen and darkens with disappointment, âIs this your new trick to get me back?â he retorts, and the corner of Nixieâs lips curls into a smirk. I blink in confusion. Trick? âWhyâwhy would I trick you with something like this?â His jaw clenches, and the air turns cold with his icy gaze, âYou tell me, Rena. You want me to believe that without having a wolf, you can carry the child of an Alpha?â I flinch at his words. I am not proud of my condition. But it's out of my control. âI know it's hard to believe. I did not believe it either. Thatâs why I ran two tests to confirm the report. I am really carrying a baby.â I take a step towards his desk and hand him the file. He flips through it, his eyes going over the report. Nixie leans in to also check, and her face turns pale. It makes me a little happy. This child will be the one to save our relationship and this pack. âI get it now,â he says, staring at the table in thought, and I breathe in relief. âYou went to Shadow Den after the divorce for this reason. To create a fake pregnancy report.â He adds, and suddenly it feels like I have been punched in the gut. âWhat?! What are you talking about?â I ask, my eyes wide in horror. Shadow Den is a shady place at the borders of the pack where all kinds of illegal activities take place, including creating fake documents. A dignified lady will never step into that place because it reeks of crime and rogue trafficking. âI told my men to keep an eye on you, and they reported that you went to Shadow Den. At first, I couldnât believe it and punished them for lying to me. But now it seems that they were telling me the truth.â The look Elijah gives me completely shatters my soul. It feels like the respect he had for me is broken now. I shake my head frantically, âNo! I did not go there, Elijah. Please trust me!â He scoffs, his eyes swirling with hurt. âHow can I trust you when you are doing things behind my back? You know how much I have desired a child. It pains me to think you have gone this far.â âThatâs not true. I will never do something like this, you know that,â The corner of my eyes prick. How can he believe that I will fake childbirth? âI can prove myself this time. Call the hospital and ask if I had done a test there or not.â I raise my voice, holding my ground as much as I can. Elijah dials the number on his phone. He puts it on the loudspeaker and places it on the desk for me to hear. With each ring, my heart beats with anticipation. This has to work. The clinic keeps records of their patients. âLarsen's Clinic speaking. How may I help you, Alpha?â The female receptionistâs voice comes from the receiving end. Elijah places his hands on the desk and asks, âIs there any record of my wife Verena Donovan getting a USG test done today at your clinic?â âGive me a second please, Alpha,â the receptionist answers politely. Patient records are confidential, but since it's the Alpha asking for information, the hospital has to obey his orders. I fidget, waiting for her to confirm it. Each second feels like an hour, making me grow nervous. Her voice finally comes through, âThereâs no record of her checking in our clinic today, Alpha.â My heart drops, and for a second I forget how to breathe. No, this canât be possible. I was there. They saw me. Then, why? Elijah hangs up the phone. Nixieâs eyes glint with victory as she stares at me. The walls around the office feel like they are closing in on me. Why did the clinic lie? Is someone else behind this? My gaze shifts to Nixie, who has a smug look on her face. It is strange how she has been so silent and did not try to stop me from showing the reports. He sighs and takes off his glasses. âRena, look. Your excuses are not going to work on me. This rejection is going to happen because as an Alpha, I have to be with my rightful mate.â He rises from the chair and approaches me. Standing close to me, he adds âAnd I am letting you stay here. I wonât banish you from the pack, so you donât have to use these cheap tricks.â Cheap tricks? My hand goes to my belly. The man I have spent my life with for three years did not try to believe me for once. This proves that he never trusted me in all these years, and I thought that we had a good relationshipâone that was built out of mutual love and respect. It was all in my head. âThis is the extent of my kindness, Rena,â Elijah adds, âDonât test my patience any further.â I donât need his kindness. The only thing I wanted from him was to take my side, to have faith in me. But he pushed it all away. I decide to leave silently and walk towards the door. When I grab the handle with my shaking hand, his voice stops me. âRena.â I look over my shoulder and find him staring at me. There is something in his gaze. âI hope you remember the time of the rejection ceremony tomorrow. Donât try to bail on me because then Iâll have to force you to join me at the training grounds.â My chest tightens at the lack of empathy in his voice. âI wonât,â I hold back the tears that threaten to fall by clenching the doorknob tightly. He wants to get rid of me so badly. But I am worried about my child. I can only pray to have the strength to protect my baby from his rejection. Chapter 6 : Loveâs Not Enough Verena âSo, when is the Alpha throwing us a party?â Dory asks as she walks into my room with a cheerful smile. She does not know. The only thing she knows is that I went to Elijah to tell him the good news. âYou definitely have to tell me the names you are deciding on, especially if it's a girl. I donât want our princess to have a terrible name like mine. Also Iââ âWe are going to have a rejection ceremony today,â I say with a grim expression. Dory blinks a few times, âWhat? Thatâs such a bad joke.â My lips curve in a sad smile while I sit on the armchair, âIt's not.â The girlâs smile drops, âNo, thatâs not possible.â My gaze dips to the jar sheâs holding in her hand, âDid you bring the herbs I asked you to?â Her brows pucker, âYeah, I did. But the herbs you asked for are used to protect an unborn from any strong supernatural forces. Why would you ask for something likeââ her lips stop moving as her eyes light up with realization. There are certain herbs that protect an unborn child in the womb of a mother who gets rejected from her mate. I told her to bring one of those so that no harm comes to my baby. She stays still for a few seconds, âWhat? Iâ Are you really getting rejected?â I answer her with my silence. She stands still, as if processing everything. âThe Alpha...heâs behind this, isnât he?â she grits her teeth. âI should have known it. Something felt off about you staying in this room, and looking so pale.â She clenches her fist. I slowly rise from my armchair, âDory, calm down.â âNo for this case!â she slams the jar into the bedside, and stomps out of the room. Crap! I run up to her. Sheâs going to argue with Elijah. Stepping out of the room, I get hold of her wrist, and stop her, âStop! Donât do it.â She whips her head at me, rage burning like coal in her eyes, âLuna, I respect you. But I canât accept this. How can he do this to you? Iâll go and knock some sense into him!â âNo, no, no.â I pull her back. She is acting like a dog who has gone feral, and needs to be kept on a leash. Most of the time she is calm and rational. But when it comes to the people she cares for, she becomes hot-headed and does something regretful. If she talks back to Elijah, she can be put into the cells or even banished. âCalm down. This decision is mutual,â I say, and she freezes. She turns to me with a face as if lightning has struck her. âWhat about the child? How can you get separated when the future heir of this pack is growing inside you?â She points at my belly and I place my palm on it. Despite what the clinic said, I believe that a life is growing inside me. I can feel it in my bones. But I donât want to tell Dory everything. She does not need to be involved in my problems. "It's because of the new girl who joined the pack, isnât it?â Dory asks suddenly, and I jerk my head up at her, my heart skipping a beat. I did not expect her to catch on to it so quickly. She notices my face, âYou donât need to worry about her, Luna. Iâll teach her a lesson that sheâll run out of the borders of this pack and never look back,â she says with determination. I sigh. This girl has no sense of danger. âYouâll do nothing like that. Promise me.â She frowns, âButââ âI said what I said. Donât argue with your Luna,â I will be ex-Luna soon but there is time left for the rejection ceremony. So I will use my authority to make sure Dory does not put herself in danger. Her shoulders sag, and she reluctantly nods. âBut why are you not doing anything? Will you let another girl just take everything from you?â Her words prick me. I did try, but when Elijah wants me to step out of his life, then there is nothing I can do. Even our child could not save our relationship because he does not even believe in its existence. âIt's pointless. Also, it's better to end things. Our marriage was like an agreement and since he has no use for me now, the agreement has ended.â It was a mistake. If I had known that I would be treated like this after the return of his fated mate, I would have never agreed to this marriage. Second chance mates after all areâŚsecond choice, not first. âBut LunaâŚâ She steps closer to me, her brown eyes staring at me, âYou love him, more than your own life. I know you.â Her words squeeze my chest tightly and warm tears cover my vision. She has seen how much dedicated I have been to Elijah. I blink to push my tears back, and amidst the silence of the gloomy morning my words come out like a sad symphony, âMy love is not enough.â A tear slips down my left eye. Dory's eyes glisten with pain as she wraps her arms around me in a gentle embrace. The warmth of her act stirs something inside me, and I break down into sobs. Now that she's here, I realize how much I needed someone's presence to share my sorrow. With no parents or many friends whom I can trust to open up to, given my focus on work and Elijah, her presence feels like a cool shade after hours of walking in scorching heat. "I am so sorry this is happening to you. If the Alpha can't see how much you have sacrificed for him, then he does not deserve you!" she cries, and I hug her tighter. It brings me some relief knowing that there's someone for me. "Don't worry sweetheart, it's okay. I can make it." I pat Dory on the back. "Later I'll go to Elijah's room and get my stuff back, they must not want to see me in this house, and neither do I.â Chapter 7: Shattered Expectations An hour later, I step inside Elijahâs bedroom to get all my stuff. The walls of the room make me suffocated as it reminds me of the times we have spent here. Brushing those thoughts away, I focus on my task at hand. There is no point in staying in this packhouse so Iâll pack my things and leave. The money I have saved from my stock investments will get me to stay for six months in a five-star hotel. I will use that time to find a job. Since I have always been focused on my duties as the Luna of this pack, I never got the time to pursue anything else, especially my dream to open a bakery. Now that I no longer have any duties towards the pack, I can focus on my dream and have a bakery shop of my own. Feeling a little energetic from the idea, I start to pull out all my accessories from the drawer when my eyes fall on a photo frame. Bright blue sky, palm trees and sand fill the background before which stands a couple smiling at me. The ladyâs cheeks are pink, and the shine in her eyes is unavoidable as her man has his arm wrapped around her waist. âHaha! You canât catch me!â I scream as I run across the sand, the warmth of the sun on my skin, and the cool breeze tangling my hair. Elijah has a challenging look on his face as he chases me, but thereâs a subtle smile on his handsome sun-kissed face. Before I know it, his strong arms grab me from behind, âLooks like I won,â I gasp as he gently lifts me off my feet, my heart fluttering in my chest. With a playful smile, he swings me around. Our laughter mixes and rings in the air, the world fading away as we get lost into the moment. My hand trembles as I run my palm over the picture in the photo frame. Those were some of our best moments, filled with joy and sweetness. Our relationship wasnât one of love, but he was slowly warming up to me. "Oh, looks like there is a thief in here," Nixie's voice startles me as I find her standing inside the room. "How dare you try to steal my things?" she accuses me with her arms crossed. I look at the clothes that I am holding. "These are my things." She scoffs, "No more. Whatever you had before, it all belongs to me now. Including Elijah." Her words cut deep, and she smiles in satisfaction, enjoying the effect her words have on me. Her eyes lower to my hand, zeroing in on the ring I am wearing. I look at the diamond ring. It's a very special ring to me as Elijah gifted it to me on my birthday. "This ring will protect you from everything and my heart is in it. I give it to you," He said when he slid it onto my index finger. It's a rare diamond that can't be bought with money. "Hand over that ring right now," Nixie says, her eyes beaming with greed. I take a step back, holding my hand. "No." This ring means a lot to me. Even if I am separated from Elijah, I still want to keep a part of him with me forever. âI wonât say it again. Give it to me; it's my order! Your Lunaâs order,â she shouts. âYou'll never be my Luna. And I'm not giving this to you,â I reply confidently. âHow dare you!â she grabs my wrist forcefully, and I yelp as a sharp pain shoots through my finger to my spine as she pulls the ring out of me forcefully. âGive it to me or Iâll cut your fingers off, you useless lowly beast!â she yells. Instinctively, I push her away with my other hand, and she stumbles back onto someoneâs chest. My eyes go round when I see Elijah holding her from behind. His eyes are as cold as the Arctic, freezing me in my spot. âWhat is happening here?â âE-elijah,â Nixie starts crying, and wraps her arms around his neck, âIââ she sniffs, âI was only asking her how costly the ring is and she pushed me away.â She sobs like a baby. âThatâs not true. She was trying to take the ring from me!â I protest. âSo what if she did?â he asks, his face like a carved stone with no emotions. I stare at him, trying to process what he said for a moment. âI told her that she can have the ring when she asked me about it.â My eyes widen in disbelief, unblinking as they stare at him. Time stands still. I canât believe what he is saying. âHand over the ring to her, Rena,â he demands in a frosty voice. My feet feel glued to the floor. Nixieâs lips curl in a smile as she watches me in despair. The room closes around me, suffocating me with the weight of its shattered expectations. My lips curve upwards, a smile tugging at the corners of my mouth. It's devoid of any joy and is a mask to hide the emptiness within. Why did I even hope that heâll care for me? Stupid, stupid me. I walk towards them and pull out the ring from my finger. âHere, take it,â I say while the smile remains intact. âYou can have everything else here too. I donât want it anymore.â It's exhausting to keep hoping that things will change, that heâll take me back. Those are my last words, and I walk out of the room, accepting my defeat. Nixie wins, I lose. Suddenly, I feel a hand grab my wrist from behind and hear Elijahâs voice, âRena.â I freeze. His voice is so gentle. My heart pounds in my chest, and I look past my shoulder to meet his black eyes. âThe rejection ceremony is going to start soon. Iâll wait for you at the training grounds.â Chapter 8 : The Rejection Verena I smile, while my heart breaks in pain. He is so good at crushing my heart, like it's an object. âI will be there in time.â Saying that, I pull my hand away from him, engraving his touch for the last time in my head. A while later, I look at my reflection in the mirror. Dark eye bags hang under my green eyes, like someone has sucked the soul out of me. Only half an hour left before the ceremony begins, and after that, I will be separated from Elijah completely. I have mentally prepared myself for it, but physically, I am in a mess. Nixie took all my clothes and accessories, even the ones I bought myself. I am not that interested in fashion, so most of my clothes and jewelry were gifted by Elijah. So now, I have nothing to wear except this dress that I have on. My hands tremble a little in concern. Without anything, it will be hard for me to survive. But then I remind myself that I will be a mother soon. Stress is not good for the baby. I rub my belly, âMamma promises to be strong from now on. You hang in there, pup.â I will need to dip into some of my savings to purchase new clothes and other necessities. But first, I must find a good hotel to stay in. My thoughts are interrupted by the loud sound of footsteps, and my face sours when I see Nixie walk in through the door, looking very chirpy. Now, what does she want? "Why are you here?" I ask in frustration, deciding not to turn around and act as though I am busy. Searching for hotels will be a better use of my time. I feel her close in, and she waves her hand before my face from behind. My gaze falls on the diamond ring on her finger, the ring I thought Elijah had gifted me as a sign of his love. My heart crumbles at the sight of it. "It suits me more than you, doesn't it? Elijah said that it looks better on me," she giggles, adding salt to my wound. I intentionally stay silent and focus on scrolling through a site that shows the various hotels available with their ratings and reviews. "Hello? I am talking to you!" she waves her hand again, clearly annoyed by not receiving her expected response. I refuse to give her the satisfaction of seeing me in pain, so I continue to avoid her. There's a groan from behind before she slaps my phone away, causing it to hit the hard, hardwood floor. I gasp at its state and immediately pick it up. The screen has cracked. "Now, that's a proper reaction," she says, smirking. Clenching my jaw, I face her. "Whatâs your problem, you mad woman?! I have divorced Elijah, and we are rejecting each other. That should be more than enough for you!" She sneers at me. "Don't act like you're doing me a favor. Actually, I'll do you a favor. Once you're rejected, I'll make sure you get banished after that." My face drains of all colors. Banishment? No! If I'm banished, I'll become a rogue with nowhere to live and no means to survive. That's assuming I don't get hurt by the dangerous creatures outside the borders or get captured by rogue traffickers who might sell me to some nasty, old Alpha as a slave first. I can't let my child be born in those circumstances. "Why? I'll leave this packhouse after rejection, so I won't be a threat to you anymore," I protest. She scowls. "Of course you are. I don't know what Elijah saw in you, but he seems to still care about you. He was telling me to return your clothes since he gave them to you," she rolls her eyes, "And he won't allow me to turn you into a slave for this packhouse either. So it means you're a threat to my position." I gulp, feeling a little relieved knowing that Elijah said that. But it's quickly replaced by Nixie's warning. "Be prepared to be kicked out. See you in the training grounds," she waves her hand and walks away humming a tune. My legs give out, and I collapse to the floor. My fingers curl around the bedsheet for support as I try to calm the crumbling anxiety inside me. What do I do now? I can't become a rogue. Dory walks in, her eyes falling on me. "Luna, are you okay?" she rushes up to me and helps me stand. She touches my forehead. "You're burning up. Did something happen?" I shake my head. "I'm fine. Is it time?" Her face falls, and she nods once. Taking a deep breath, I gather some courage. "Alright, let's go." Chapter 9 : Rejection I have to fight this. If Nixie wins, my pup will be in danger. I won't let that happen. We walk down the stairs and step outside. The sky is filled with gray clouds. On the large training grounds where the air usually buzzes with excitement and the energy of warriors, there's a damp, silent atmosphere among the people who came to watch the ceremony. None of them seem sad to watch me get rejected. They've never wanted me as their Luna because I'm an orphan. I take my place in the center of the ground. The people on the left clear a path for Elijah to walk through by standing in two rows, and he stops before the space created for the ceremony. Our eyes meet for a few seconds before he turns to the crowd. âI wonât waste time on explaining whatâs happening here as most of you present are already aware. But know that I wonât tolerate anyone breaking the rules. If anyone dares to say a bad word to Verena or insults her in any way, I will have your head. Rejected or not, she is still a respected member of our family and this pack. So you all are expected to treat her fairly. Is that clear?â The people nod in unison, fearing Elijahâs wrath. A part of me is glad that he is rejecting me in a respectful manner. It would have hurt a lot more if he just allowed anyone to publicly berate me, especially when I go through the rejection. Elijah walks closer to me, and looks into my eyes. I feel his breathing was a little erratic and his face didn't look quite right.. Is he drunk? "I, Elijah Donovan, Alpha of the Iron Claw Pack, reject you, Verena, as my fated mate and my Luna," he declares. I close my eyes, attempting to block out the pain threatening to consume me. But even in the darkness behind my eyelids, I feel the strength of the rejection, as it threatens to tear my body apart. The pain rattles through my bones, clogging my nostrils and leaving me breathless. Elijah extends his arm to help me, but I take a step back. I will endure this pain alone. "I, Verena, current Luna of the Iron Claw Pack, accept your rejection, Alpha Elijah," I declare. My legs wobble beneath my dress as the ache in my chest intensifies. I feel a strong convulsion in my belly, causing me to lose my balance and drop to the ground, clutching my stomach. My baby! "Rena, are you alright?" Elijah inquires, but I know better than to believe that he actually cares for me. Gradually, the pain subsides, and I feel the herbs taking action to protect my baby from the effects of the rejection. "I am fine," I manage to say, wiping my tear-soaked face. "You accepted it," he mutters under his breath. Was he not expecting it? I donât even understand him at this point. My limbs feel weak, so I remain in my place, trying to prevent myself from passing out. Just as I begin to feel like I have regained some control over my body, a strong scent hits my nose. It smells like lemons and grass, reminiscent of summer. I glance in the direction from which it's coming and spot a man walking into the crowd, looking around anxiously. Heâs as tall as Elijah, broad and well-built, with spiky light-blond hair, deep blue eyes, and a tattoo running down his left arm. His aura is powerful, like that of an Alpha. The moment his eyes land on me, he growls ferociously, his wolf showing in his eyes, "Mine!" | LEARN_MORE | https://wwwedb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=16560&u | New world publications | https://www.facebook.com/100090352943774/ | 3,782 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | wwwedb.com | DCO | https://wwwedb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=16560&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/470211616_1089749272699128_268792006170706946_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=100&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=0MC8cm6ASRMQ7kNvgFhkQQp&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AtQ23ouK47Om0vQ51H86oMr&oh=00_AYCnEFQJhX0TDbTdFa_l5dWXTrLUMkrTgxGMxrUMIE2jLA&oe=678B7B9C | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | New world publications | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,018 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664014}' |
Yes | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | My husband Killian arrived late after my grandmother's funeral because he needed to be there for his first love. He looked like he ran in his wolf form. His hair is a mess, and his tie is not even tied properly. He was breathing so fast that he couldnât even speak. My face turned blank as I locked gazes with him. âAstrid, I couldnât leave early because I had something I needed to take care of.â My fists balled up at my sides as I narrowed my eyes at him. âWas there anything else more important than to be on your mateâs side at the time that she needed you the most?â I shot back at him. His eyes met mine and for a fleeting moment, a shadow of remorse flickered across his gaze âIf only you hadnât stopped me that night, I would have still met my grandma while she was still alive.â Killianâs grip on the bouquet tightened when he heard my words. âI had no idea Iââ âI kept telling you that my grandmother needed me!â I yelled, interrupting him from his words. âAll you cared about is Giselle who is pre9nant with your child.â I blurted out finally releasing all the emotions that I have buried down long enough. Killian could not say a word. My heart which has always been heavy, felt lighter than it was after I finally told him the things that Iâve been wanting to tell him. I glanced at him in surprise when he suddenly crouched down and placed the bouquet of flowers that he brought on the ground where my grandmother had just been buried. âI only came here to pay my respects to your grandmother. Iâm sorry if I was late, that was out of my control,â Killian replied like he didnât just hear the rest of the words that I said. My breath turned shallow and my heart burned more in anger at his heartlessness. Unable to control myself anymore, I picked up the flowers and thrashed them on Killian until the flowers were all shredded into pieces. âYou are here to pay respect?!â I screamed at him. I threw what was left of the flowers to the ground. âIâm tired of this. If you canât give me respect, I should at least give myself some respect,â I spoke in a weak voice as I collected myself together. âLetâs just stop this joke and get a divorce,â I spoke firmly, looking at Killian directly in his eyes. | LEARN_MORE | https://wwwedb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=16865&u | Galaxy in the Story | https://www.facebook.com/61555427913037/ | 2,113 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | wwwedb.com | IMAGE | https://wwwedb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=16865&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/471510284_1123968585334988_567416444404452472_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=108&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=rGesuWjZpFgQ7kNvgGTG429&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=ARpJXfZnHx0cmo4UVHm-Odi&oh=00_AYBjQgjIcsuM6GJCZWZfpFg-EgueGnZ9Xa7-LX1k3uzICA&oe=678B9BD2 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Galaxy in the Story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,229 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664219}' |
No | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
He drunkenly hugged her âCall me husband again ......â | đNyla Jayston was in her third month of trying to conceive when she saw a message on her husband Clark Sumner's phone from a contact named "Jordyn Cheatham". Jordyn: [I think my new nightgown is a bit tight. Why don't you come over and check if it fits?] Attached was a selfie of a woman in a deep V-neck red slip dress, her body partly exposed, exuding seduction. Nyla's grip on the phone tightened. She scrolled up and found Clark and Jordyn's previous exchanges to be strictly work-related, which made her frown. 'Was the text sent by mistake? OrâŚ' A hand wrapped around Nyla's waist from behind, breaking her thoughts. Clark pressed his warm body against hers and gently nibbled her earlobe. "Honey, I'm all cleaned up. Do you want to do it on the couch or the bed?" Before Nyla could respond, Clark picked her up and laid her on the couch, his tall frame looming over her. "Since you're not saying anything, I'll choose. Let's do it on the couch," Clark said, his voice husky and his eyes filled with a flicker of fire that made Nyla blush instantly. Nyla was already beautiful, and the slight flush on her cheeks made her look like a tempting, ripe, juicy peach under the light. Clark's gaze grew darker. He leaned in to kiss Nyla, but she suddenly turned her head away. Sensing her resistance, he looked at her with confusion. "Honey, what's wrong?" Clark, usually assertive at work, now looked at Nyla with a mix of confusion and hurt, which softened her heart momentarily. Despite that, she hadn't forgotten the explicit selfie she had just seen. She stopped him with one hand on his chest and held up his phone with the other, showing him the screen. "Explain this first." Clark glanced at the screen and immediately frowned, grabbing the phone to make a call. It was quickly answered. "Mr. Sumner, what can I do for you?" Clark glowered, and his voice turned icy. "I didnât know my secretary started soliciting clients." There was a moment of silence before Jordyn's panicked voice came through. "M-Mr. Sumner, I'm sorry. That message was meant for my boyfriend. I must have sent it to you by mistake..." "Next time it happens, pack your things and leave!" Clark hung up and looked back at Nyla, his expression softening, even showing a hint of grievance. "Honey, she sent it by mistake. If you're still upset, I'll fire her tomorrow. It's late now, so letâs not waste time on someone unworthy. We haven't seen each other in a week. You need to make it up to me tonight." Clark pulled Nyla in for a kiss, but her mood was ruined despite the issue being cleared up. She wasn't in the mood anymore and pushed him away. "I'm tired tonight. Let's continue tomorrow." A flash of disappointment crossed Clark's eyes, but he didn't pressure her. "Alright, you sleep first. I'm not tired yet, so I'll go to the study to handle some work." "Okay." ⌠It started raining heavily in the middle of the night. The sound woke Nyla, and she reached out only to feel the cold space beside her. She glanced at the clockâ3:16 a.m. Nyla wondered whether Clark was still working. She got up, put on a robe, and went to the study, but it was dark and empty. Her grip on the doorknob tightened, and her heart sank. Nylaâs phone suddenly chimed, startling her in the quiet night. Seeing that it was a text from a stranger, she had a gut feeling that reading it would mean no turning back for her and Clark. A thunderclap boomed outside, startling her into accidentally pressing it. [Still awake? Because your husband isn't with you?] [I was scared because of the thunder and power outage, and he came to comfort me.] [Don't you want to know where your husband is?] As Nyla read the messages and the boastful tone, her hands trembled uncontrollably. After a long while, another text came in with an address and a series of digits. Nyla bit her lip, grabbed her car keys, and drove straight there. By the time she reached the villa, it was past 4:00 a.m. She entered the code, and the door unlocked. The living room lights were on. From the entrance to the bedroom door, a man's suit and a woman's lingerie were strewn about, revealing the urgency of their actions. Seeing the torn red nightgown at the bedroom door, Nyla felt a sense of absurdity. Although the distance from the entrance to the bedroom was only a few meters, it felt like an eternity to Nyla. Standing at the bedroom door, she felt light-headed and dizzy. She reached out, trembling, and slowly pushed the slightly open door. The sight of the messy bed and the bared couple entwinedâtheir heavy breathing filling the roomâpierced Nyla's heart. The couple was so engrossed that they didn't notice her standing there. Nyla's hand on the door frame turned white from gripping it too hard, leaving red marks on her palm. She had been with Clark for eight years, from school days to marriage, envied by everyone around them. Until today, she had never imagined betrayal between them. Now, reality dealt her a cruel blow. Even the most sincere wedding vows couldn't withstand a fickle heart. Unable to bear the sight, Nyla turned and stumbled out, driving away. She stopped by a bar on the way and decided to go in. ⌠By the time Valarie Weir arrived, Nyla had already downed two bottles of whiskey, her gaze slightly unfocused. "Valarie, you're here..." Seeing Nyla surrounded by several men, Valarie frowned. "All of you, leave!" "No, they're fine hereâ" "I said, leave!" After driving the men away, Valarie sat next to Nyla. "What happened? Did Clark really cheat on you?" Valarie was Nyla's university roommate and had witnessed Nyla and Clarkâs journey from school to marriage. She had seen Clark treat Nyla well all these years, so she couldn't believe he would cheat. Upon hearing Clarkâs name, Nyla's gaze dimmed, and the heart-wrenching pain came rushing back. "I don't want to hear that name right now." Chapter 2 Nyla downed her drink in one gulp. She had never imagined Clark would betray her. Seeing him in bed with another woman felt like a dagger through her heart. "I just can't believe it. He loved you so much. He didn't seem like the type to cheat. Maybe there's a misunderstanding," Valarie suggested. Nyla let out a cold laugh. "I saw it with my own eyes. How could that be a misunderstanding?" The room fell silent. Watching Nyla drink like there was no tomorrow, Valarie grabbed the glass from her hand. "Even if he cheated, you shouldn't punish yourself by getting drunk. What are you going to do now?" "I'm getting a divorce. Just thinking about him with that woman makes me sick." Upon seeing the defiance in Nylaâs red eyes, Valarie's heart ached. "Don't think about it now. You need to rest. Decide what to do next once youâre calm. I'll take you home." Nyla shook her head. "No... I don't want to go back." Returning to that house would only bring back the sickening images of Clarkâs betrayal. Each recollection made her feel nauseous. Seeing Nylaâs reluctance, Valarie didn't insist. "I'll book you a hotel room then." ⌠After booking a room, Valarie took Nyla to the hotel entrance. "Are you sure you don't want me to take you up?" Nyla shook her head. "No, you go rest. I'll be fine." She waved with the room card and walked into the hotel. Seeing Nyla walk steadily, Valarie finally breathed a sigh of relief and drove away once Nyla was inside the hotel. What she didn't know was that Nyla, when drunk, appeared sober but was actually a mess inside. Nyla entered the elevator, scanned her card, and the elevator began to ascend. Soon, the doors opened with a ding. As Nyla stepped out onto the carpet, her legs almost gave out. She steadied herself against the wall, massaging her aching temples while searching for her room number. The wine was taking its toll, and her vision blurred. She found Room 8919 and tried the card on the door. Hearing no beep, she frowned and was about to push the door when it suddenly opened. Nyla froze. Before she could react, a large hand yanked her into the dark room. The door slammed shut, cutting off the light from the hallway. She was pressed against the door, a man's breath hot against her ear, making her shiver. The familiar scent of pine filled her senses, but before she could place it, she felt the warmth of his lips on hers. "Mmph!" Realizing what was happening, Nyla struggled. Damon was strong, and with the wine dulling her strength, her hands felt weak, almost inviting as she pushed against his chest. Damonâs hands roamed her body, leaving a trail of fire, and her body grew more responsive under his touch. Nyla tried to push him away, but he easily caught her wrists and pinned them above her head. "Letâ Mmph! Let me goâŚ" He stopped kissing her and chuckled. "No need to play hard to get." His fingers traced her collar, the cool touch making her shudder. His body heat seemed to melt her, and her legs grew weak. In the dark, Nylaâs senses heightened. She felt Damon unbuttoning her clothes, her mouth dry, her last bit of rationality warning her that this was going too far. "Let me go!" She mustered all her strength to push him, but he simply picked her up and threw her onto the bed. The bed was soft, so Nyla didnât feel pain, but the impact made her head spin. She tried to get up, but Damon pinned her down. Soon, her clothes were gone, and they were both nearly bared. He pressed against her, ready. His dominating presence made her tremble. She pushed against his chest, biting her lip to stay calm and clear-headed. "Mister, I think I entered the wrong room. Please let me goâŚ" Nylaâs voice shook with tension. "Tsk!" Damon's voice was impatient, his tone cold. "Still playing?" He was about to get up and kick Nyla out when the room light suddenly came on. Nyla had accidentally hit the light switch in her struggle. The sudden light made Damon squint. He was shocked when he saw the terrified woman beneath him. Nyla, recognizing Damon, felt the blood drain from her face. The fear sobered her instantly. She couldnât believe itâthe man who almost violated her was Clarkâs uncle, Damon Summer! "Uncle DamonâŚ" Nyla had always been wary of Damon. He was the youngest son of Richard Sumner and Marie Thorne, doted on by them and known for his unpredictable, cold nature. Even outsiders avoided crossing him. When she married Clark, he had warned her to steer clear of Damon. "Shut up!" Damon's face was dark, his gaze icy, as he contemplated whether to silence her for good. Then, his eyes shifted to her bare body, darkening further. He turned away, getting off the bed. "Get dressed and get out!" As Damon moved, Nyla caught a glimpse of him where she shouldn't, and her face turned red with embarrassment. Upon seeing her flushed face, Damon's expression soured even more. "Still not leaving?" Nyla could not care less about her embarrassment as she hastily dressed and left without looking back. Once outside, she checked the room number and realized her mistakeâit wasnât Room 8919, but Room 8916! She had entered the wrong room and almost slept with her husbandâs uncle. The thought made her headache worse. She should have let Valarie take her up. Unfortunately, it was too late for regrets now. After Nyla left, Damon dialed a number with a glower on his face. "Delete all surveillance footage from the Empire Skyview Hotel tonight!" Upon hanging up, he looked at the messy bed and sheets, his irritation growing. He had almost slept with his nephewâs wife... What a mess! Chapter 3 On Nyla's way back, she hesitated for a long time before finally messaging Damon, someone whose contact she had had for three years but had never contacted. Nyla: [Uncle Damon... Can we pretend tonight never happened? I was really drunk and went to the wrong room.] She waited for a long time, but there was no response from Damon. Frowning, she sent another message. Nyla: [?] As soon as she sent it, a red exclamation mark appeared: [You are no longer friends with this user. Please send a friend request to continue chatting.] Nyla bit her lip. Damon had deleted her. He must not want to bring this up again. Relieved, she finally felt a bit of peace. ⌠When Nyla got home, it was already past 6:00 a.m. As soon as she opened the door, she saw Clark sitting on the sofa. He turned sharply at the sound of the door, his eyes bloodshot from a sleepless night. "Where were you last night? I called you dozens of times. Why didnât you answer?" Clark stood up and walked quickly toward her, reaching out to grab her hand, but she pulled away. He froze, about to speak, but she spoke first, her tone icy. "You can stay out all night, but I can't?" Nyla had always been gentle. In their eight years together, they had hardly ever argued. This was the first time she had spoken to him so coldly. Clark sensed something was wrong and noticed her red, swollen eyes. His expression changed, and his hand clenched at his side. "You know, don't you?" His voice was calm, without a trace of guilt or panic, as if he had expected this day to come. Upon seeing his unapologetic demeanor, Nyla's long-suppressed emotions finally exploded. She swung her bag at him, her eyes red with fury, like a madwoman. All the good times they had shared, all the happy moments, were shattered the moment she saw him in bed with another woman. They could never be pieced together again. "Clark Sumner, how could you do something so disgusting?! If you didnât love me anymore, you could have divorced me. Why did you have to hurt me like this?" Nyla had assumed that no third party could ever come between them. Unfortunately, reality gave her a harsh slap, waking her from the lies he had woven and turning her love for him into a joke. Seeing her red, tear-filled eyes, Clark felt a pang in his chest. He grabbed her hand and pulled her into his arms. "Nyla, Iâm sorry..." Nyla shoved him away, wanting to laugh but only tears came. "Donât touch me with your filthy hands! "Is it that hard to stay faithful? "Since we got married, Iâve met many excellent men, and some have shown interest in me. But Iâve never crossed the line. If I can do it, why canât you?!" Clark clenched his fists when he saw the disappointment and anger in her eyes. "Nyla, youâre the only one I love⌠It was just an accident with herâŚ" His explanation sounded so weak that Nyla found it both laughable and nauseating. "So youâre saying I could sleep with another man and then tell you it was an accident? That I may have betrayed you physically, but my heart still belongs to you?" A flash of ruthlessness crossed Clark's eyes. "If you dare, Iâll end you and that man together in bed." Seeing his icy gaze, Nyla felt a chill in her heart. If he knew betrayal was unforgivable, why would he still betray her? She took a deep breath and spoke slowly. "Do you remember what I told you when you proposed?" She had said that if he ever betrayed her, she would not forgive him but leave him. Clarkâs expression changed. "I will not let you leave!" Nyla wiped her tears, her expression a mixture of ridicule and hatred. "Whether you agree or not, Iâve made up my mind. Iâm divorcing you. You donât deserve my forgiveness." With that, she ignored his reaction and went upstairs. Clark stared at her back, his gaze dark. ⌠Back in the bedroom, Nyla went straight to the bathroom to shower, unable to stand the smell of wine on herself. While applying body wash, she noticed red marks on her chest and paused. The image of Damonâs hands roaming her body flashed through her mind, making her frown. She scrubbed the marks hard until the skin around them turned red, trying to erase his touch. After her shower, she saw Clark sitting on the bed with his head down, lost in thought. She frowned and decided to ignore him. They would be divorced soon anyway. Clark looked up and saw Nyla coming out in just a towel. Her damp hair dripped water, her freshly washed face flushed like a blooming rose with an enticing fragrance. The towel barely covered her behinds, revealing her long, fair legs. His breath hitched, his gaze glued on her. Nyla didnât notice Clark's reaction. She walked to the wardrobe to grab her pajamas when a pair of arms suddenly wrapped around her from behind. "Nyla..." Clark's voice was husky, filled with undisguised desire. Clark had been thinking about how to win her back downstairs after she left. The only way he could think of was to have a child with her. He had come upstairs to discuss this with her, planning to take it slow. However, he lost control upon seeing her just out of the shower. In the past, such behavior would have stirred Nyla's feelings, but all she felt now was disgust. She turned and pushed him away, her gaze full of revulsion. "Donât touch me. I feel dirty." Hurt flashed in Clark's eyes. He grabbed her hands, his expression earnest. "Didnât you always want a child? Letâs have one now, okay?" Nyla shook him off at his matter-of-fact attitude. "That was before. I might have a child in the future, but it wonât be yours." Her words enraged Clark. He grabbed her and threw her onto the bed, pinning her down. "Say that again!" His eyes were full of anger, but Nyla didnât care. "It doesnât matter how many times I say it. Iâm disgusted by you. Iâd rather die than have your child." As soon as she finished speaking, Clark kissed her fiercely. Chapter 4 Nyla froze for a moment, then struggled desperately. Just the thought of Clark kissing another woman the night before filled her with disgust and rage. "Let go!" Her struggles were futile against Clark, who only tightened his grip around her waist. As she fought, her towel loosened, revealing her body. His gaze darkened, and he felt a rush of desire. Their bodies were pressed tightly together, and Nyla quickly noticed the change in Clark. Furious, she bit him hard, tasting blood in their mouths. Instead of letting go, Clark's other hand slipped under Nyla's towel. She had nothing on underneath, having just come out of the shower. She stiffened and struggled even more fiercely. "Clark, get off me!" Clark ignored Nyla, his fingers teasing her sensitive spots. "Nyla, you need me too, don't you?" Nylaâs struggles were in vain, and she grew increasingly desperate. As Clark positioned himself, she closed her eyes in despair. "Clark, don't make me hate you." Clark halted abruptly. Seeing Nyla filled with despair and pain, like a fragile porcelain doll about to shatter, made him pause. He wanted her desperately, but a voice in his head warned that if he took her now, it would be the end of them. He stared at her, his hand tightening around her waist. After several tense seconds, he suddenly let go and got off the bed, leaving the room quickly. The door slammed shut with a loud bang, making Nyla flinch. She clutched the blanket tightly. ⌠For the next few days, Clark didn't come home. Nyla called him several times to discuss the divorce, but he didn't respond. ⌠The weekend arrived. Nyla was in the living room, sending out job applications when she heard the front door open. Clark walked in, looking haggard. They stared at each other in silence until Nyla broke it, closing her laptop and standing up calmly. "Since you're back, let's talk about the divorce." Clark frowned. "I told you, I won't divorce you. I'm here to remind you that we have to go to the family dinner tonight." The Sumners held a monthly dinner, and ever since their wedding, Clark and Nyla had attended together. The family wasn't kind to Nyla, often treating her poorly. She endured it because she believed Clark loved her. After seeing him with another woman, however, she couldn't lie to herself anymore. "I don't want to go. Go by yourself." Clarkâs expression turned impatient. "Nyla, how long are you going to keep this up?" He had ignored her calls and messages, hoping she would calm down, but she was still the same. "I'm not keeping anything up. I just want a divorce." Upon hearing the word "divorce", Clark's patience wore thin. He looked at Nyla as if she were unreasonable. "Divorce? You haven't worked since we got married. How will you support yourself? Which company would hire you? And what about your father's exorbitant medical bills? Can you afford those? "Nyla, you're not a teenager anymore. You're 28. It's time to grow up. "I'm the CEO of the Sumner Group. I face temptations all the time. Sometimes, it's hard to resist, but those women will never take your place as my wife. What more do you want?" Clark couldn't understand why Nyla didn't see that he still loved her, even if he couldn't commit to being with her forever. Seeing Clarkâs arrogant demeanor, Nyla couldn't reconcile this man with the shy boy who had once blushed while confessing his love and promising never to hurt her. Maybe this was his true selfâselfish, proud, and condescending. "If being mature means tolerating your infidelity, then I'm sorry, I can't do that. Find someone else. Here are the divorce papers I've had drafted. Sign them when you have time." Clark glanced at the documents, sneering when he saw the section on asset division. "Quite the appetite you have, asking for half my assets. Do you really think that's possible?" "I deserve it. Why not?" Clark chuckled, his tone mocking. "Look around this house. Did you buy anything here? I've been covering your father's medical expenses for years. If we tally things up, you should be paying me. Should I have my lawyer do the math?" As Nyla watched his bitter expression, she couldn't believe she had once loved this man. He had hidden his true self so well that, until she caught him cheating, she had thought he was a great guy. "Don't forget, if it weren't for me giving you that patent, you wouldn't be the Sumner Group's CEO. And you were the one who told me to stay home after we got married. If I had continued my research, I would have earned far more than what you've given me." Unfazed, Clark replied, "Who would believe you about the patent now? "I don't want to argue about money, but if you insist on a divorce, we'll have to settle accounts. Nyla, as long as you drop the divorce idea, my money is still yours to use." "Clark, you're despicable!" Since he refused to divorce, she'd have to sue. She turned to leave, but he blocked her. "Change your clothes. We're going to the family dinner." "I said I'm not going. Tell them I'm not feeling well." Clark grabbed her wrist. "Nyla, I'm running out of patience. Don't force me to cut off your father's medical expenses." "You wouldn't dare!" Clark took out his phone and called his secretary. "Cancel my father-in-law's medical payment for next monthâ" Furious, Nyla grabbed his phone and ended the call. "You're crossing a line, Clark." "Crossing a line?" Clark's gaze was full of contempt as he yanked her closer. "Everything you have is because of me. Don't you think you're the one crossing the line? Change your clothes, or I have numerous ways to make you comply." Chapter 5 Seeing the coldness in Clark's eyes, Nyla realized how blind she had been to fall in love with such a man. Her eyes stung with unshed tears, but she refused to show any vulnerability in front of him. She yanked her hand away, took a deep breath, and headed upstairs. The only thought in her mind was to find a job quickly so she could move out and divorce Clark. She grabbed a random outfit, tied her hair up with a hairpin, and went back downstairs. She was never one to fuss over her appearance. In the past, she had dressed up for the Sumners' gatherings to make a good impression. Now, she couldn't care less. Hearing her footsteps, Clark looked up. Nyla wore a fitted white dress, her waist so slender it seemed it could be encircled with one hand. Her hair was secured with a jade hairpin, revealing her delicate neck. She was breathtakingly beautiful. The grace she exuded was just like when they first met. However, the look in her eyes now was devoid of any warmth. "Letâs go," she said. They drove to the Sumner residence in silence. As they arrived and were about to get out of the car, a black Range Rover sped up and stopped abruptly in front of them. Upon recognizing the car, Clark's expression darkened. It was Damon's car, someone he both feared and disliked. Damon was known for his reckless and unpredictable behavior. He had refused to take over the Sumner Group when Richard wanted him to run the company, choosing to start his own business instead. Everyone had expected him to fail, but within five years, his company had grown to be worth several times more than the Sumner Group. Clark couldn't stand Damon, partly out of jealousy. Once, a comment Clark made about Damon reached Damon's ears, and in retaliation, Damon refused to collaborate with the Sumner Group, costing them millions. Damon rarely attended family dinners, and Clark had hoped to avoid him. Luck wasnât on his side todayâthey met at the door. He didnât notice Nylaâs stiffened expression when she saw Damon get out of his car. Clark opened the car door and greeted, "Uncle Damon." Damon glanced at him indifferently, his gaze briefly landing on the passenger seat before he nodded and walked into the house. Nyla let out a deep breath. When Damon looked her way, she had forgotten to breathe, fearing he might say something outrageous. He was known for his unpredictable nature, always doing whatever he pleased. Fortunately, he said nothing. She decided she needed to talk to him privately later. As Clark and Nyla walked into the living room, they saw it was already filled with people. Richard and Marie, the family heads, were chatting with Damon. He was the kind of person who naturally stood out in a crowd. Noticing Nylaâs gaze on Damon, Clark frowned. "Why are you staring at my uncle?" Nyla withdrew her gaze and replied coolly, "None of your business." Her coldness irritated Clark. "Nyla, you know I donât like you paying attention to other men." Ever since they got together, Clark had been extremely controlling, not allowing Nyla to interact with other men. She used to think this was a sign of his love, but now it seemed laughable. She sneered. "And I donât like you sleeping with other women, but you seem to enjoy it just fine." Clark said through gritted teeth, "This is a family dinner. Weâll deal with this later." "If you donât want me to bring it up, then stay out of my business," she retorted. Clark didnât want to cause a scene now because it might affect the Sumner Group and his standing with Richard, who still held all the companyâs shares. As they talked, Marie called out, "Nyla, Clark, youâre here! Come sit down!" Nyla took a deep breath, forcing a smile as she approached. She might not like the Sumners, but she maintained basic manners. "Hello, Grandpa, Grandma," she greeted with a smile. Marie, who had been urging Damon to settle down and get married, looked pleased to see the couple. "Come, sit down." She turned to Damon with a hint of dissatisfaction. "Look at Clark. He manages the company well and has a beautiful wife. They might have children soon. And you? Almost 30 and still single. If you donât bring a girlfriend next time, donât bother coming!" Damon glanced at the couple with a smirk. "She is indeed beautiful." He just wondered how that petite frame would suffer if she were to have children. Nyla frowned, feeling uncomfortable with Damonâs gaze. Clark also noticed the inappropriate way Damon looked at Nyla. It wasnât the look of an elder but more like a man admiring a woman. His hand clenched into a fist, and his body tensed. Marie sighed. "My point is, when will you bring me a daughter-in-law?" "Depends. If I meet someone I like, maybe Iâll bring her back tomorrow," Damon replied nonchalantly. "Youâre too picky! Iâve arranged a good match for you. Date's tomorrow, donât ruin it." "Then youâll probably have to apologize to another old friend tomorrow." Frustrated, Marie snapped, âYouâre going to drive me crazy!â Damon glanced at Clark. âClark's been married for years. Instead of pushing me, why donât you encourage him to have kids?â Marie nodded, realizing Damon wouldnât listen to her. She turned to Nyla and Clark, her expression softening. âNyla, you and Clark have been married for a few years now. When are you planning to have children?â Chapter 6 Nyla lifted her head to speak, but Clark grabbed her hand and smiled. "Grandma, we're working on it!" Nyla tried to pull her hand away, but Clark's grip was too tight. If he wouldn't let her be, she wouldn't make it easy for him either. She turned to Marie. "Grandma, I'm looking for a job right now, so having children might have to wait." The room fell silent. Clark's grip on Nyla's hand tightened painfully, and she winced. Damon glanced at Clark's hand on Nyla, noticing the bulging veins, then looked away indifferently. Clarkâs aunt, Anne Sumner, sneered. "Nyla, don't blame me for being blunt. You've been married for years. How can you not have a child yet? If it weren't for Clark insisting on marrying you, do you think your family could have ever married into the Sumners? "You should be grateful. If you don't want to have Clark's child, there are plenty of women who do. If someone else steps in, youâll be the one looking silly." Besides, Anne thought, "Who knows if Nyla is fertile?" She sounded like she meant well, but her gaze at Nyla was filled with an air of superiority. Marie frowned at Anne, disapproving. "Anne, enough." Anne pursed her lips but stayed silent. Marie turned back to Nyla with a kind smile. "Nyla, you and Clark are still young. If you don't want children yet, that's fine. Just don't overwork yourself. Our family isn't short on money. You can work if you want, but take it easy." Nyla nodded. "I understand, Grandma." With that, the awkward moment passed, and the room returned to its previous warmth. Seeing the attention shift away, Clark pulled Nyla out of the living room. Once they reached the gazebo in the backyard, he released her. "Nyla, have you lost your mind? Do you want everyone to know about our fight?" Nyla rubbed her sore hand and said, "I was just being honest." "Honest?" Clark scowled. "Should I call your father then?" Harrison Jayston was ill and couldn't handle stress. Nyla planned to divorce Clark before breaking the news to him gently. She glared at Clark. "You wouldnât dare! You were the one who cheated. What right do you have to be so self-righteous?" Clark clenched his hands, a flicker of guilt crossing his face before it was replaced by impatience. "I promised it wouldnât happen again. If you don't want to see Jordyn, I'll fire her. What more do you want?" Nyla felt like there was a communication breakdown between them and turned away. "I don't want to argue with you here." When Clark saw her red-rimmed eyes, he softened. "Nyla, I truly know I was wrong. Just don't mention divorce, and I'll make it up to you. I love you. I can't let you go." Nyla found it laughable. How could he claim to love her while being with another woman? Just thinking about him with someone else made her sick. "I will never forgive you." Betrayal was her bottom line. She couldnât pretend nothing had happened or reconcile with him. Clark knew Nyla well enough to understand that he had to be patient. He believed she still had feelings for him. Otherwise, she would have made a bigger scene when she found out. As long as he refused to divorce her, she would eventually forgive him. "Fine, we won't talk about it now. If you don't want kids yet, weâll postpone it to two years later. Since you want to work, I'll have my secretary find you a position at the Sumner Group." Nyla laughed at his arrangement, a mocking look in her eyes. "Clark, do you see me as a puppet you can control?" Hurt by her gaze, Clark frowned. "How am I controlling you? You don't want kids now, so I agreed to wait two years. You want to work, so I'll arrange it. What more do you want?" "Stop pretending. I don't want kids because I want a divorce. I want to work to sever ties with you." Clark looked at Nyla's stubborn face, displeased. Since their wedding, she had been like a canary in his cage. He couldn't let her go. "As long as I don't agree, this marriage won't end. Even if you tell a lawyer I cheated, do you have proof?" Clark's confident tone and controlling demeanor made Nyla step back, trembling with anger. She finally saw how selfish and disgusting he was. She had wasted eight yearsâthe best years of her life, from 18 to 26âloving this man. "You make me sick, Clark!" Seeing the undisguised disgust in Nyla's eyes, Clar | LEARN_MORE | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692& | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 988 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | findedc.com | DCO | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/468488068_484333964060835_7423614745601675335_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=5cmaqKshlcwQ7kNvgENnxeo&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Al-BgLHW88QiakSkDEYKmPL&oh=00_AYDiw7-D6UMqCnPSUIEbxnCbMmodpYo154gRxNebtKv8gg&oe=678B79AE | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,664,228 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2664219}' |
Yes | 2025-01-13 18:27 | active | 2258 | 0 |
![]() |
He drunkenly hugged her âCall me husband again ......â | đNyla Jayston was in her third month of trying to conceive when she saw a message on her husband Clark Sumner's phone from a contact named "Jordyn Cheatham". Jordyn: [I think my new nightgown is a bit tight. Why don't you come over and check if it fits?] Attached was a selfie of a woman in a deep V-neck red slip dress, her body partly exposed, exuding seduction. Nyla's grip on the phone tightened. She scrolled up and found Clark and Jordyn's previous exchanges to be strictly work-related, which made her frown. 'Was the text sent by mistake? OrâŚ' A hand wrapped around Nyla's waist from behind, breaking her thoughts. Clark pressed his warm body against hers and gently nibbled her earlobe. "Honey, I'm all cleaned up. Do you want to do it on the couch or the bed?" Before Nyla could respond, Clark picked her up and laid her on the couch, his tall frame looming over her. "Since you're not saying anything, I'll choose. Let's do it on the couch," Clark said, his voice husky and his eyes filled with a flicker of fire that made Nyla blush instantly. Nyla was already beautiful, and the slight flush on her cheeks made her look like a tempting, ripe, juicy peach under the light. Clark's gaze grew darker. He leaned in to kiss Nyla, but she suddenly turned her head away. Sensing her resistance, he looked at her with confusion. "Honey, what's wrong?" Clark, usually assertive at work, now looked at Nyla with a mix of confusion and hurt, which softened her heart momentarily. Despite that, she hadn't forgotten the explicit selfie she had just seen. She stopped him with one hand on his chest and held up his phone with the other, showing him the screen. "Explain this first." Clark glanced at the screen and immediately frowned, grabbing the phone to make a call. It was quickly answered. "Mr. Sumner, what can I do for you?" Clark glowered, and his voice turned icy. "I didnât know my secretary started soliciting clients." There was a moment of silence before Jordyn's panicked voice came through. "M-Mr. Sumner, I'm sorry. That message was meant for my boyfriend. I must have sent it to you by mistake..." "Next time it happens, pack your things and leave!" Clark hung up and looked back at Nyla, his expression softening, even showing a hint of grievance. "Honey, she sent it by mistake. If you're still upset, I'll fire her tomorrow. It's late now, so letâs not waste time on someone unworthy. We haven't seen each other in a week. You need to make it up to me tonight." Clark pulled Nyla in for a kiss, but her mood was ruined despite the issue being cleared up. She wasn't in the mood anymore and pushed him away. "I'm tired tonight. Let's continue tomorrow." A flash of disappointment crossed Clark's eyes, but he didn't pressure her. "Alright, you sleep first. I'm not tired yet, so I'll go to the study to handle some work." "Okay." ⌠It started raining heavily in the middle of the night. The sound woke Nyla, and she reached out only to feel the cold space beside her. She glanced at the clockâ3:16 a.m. Nyla wondered whether Clark was still working. She got up, put on a robe, and went to the study, but it was dark and empty. Her grip on the doorknob tightened, and her heart sank. Nylaâs phone suddenly chimed, startling her in the quiet night. Seeing that it was a text from a stranger, she had a gut feeling that reading it would mean no turning back for her and Clark. A thunderclap boomed outside, startling her into accidentally pressing it. [Still awake? Because your husband isn't with you?] [I was scared because of the thunder and power outage, and he came to comfort me.] [Don't you want to know where your husband is?] As Nyla read the messages and the boastful tone, her hands trembled uncontrollably. After a long while, another text came in with an address and a series of digits. Nyla bit her lip, grabbed her car keys, and drove straight there. By the time she reached the villa, it was past 4:00 a.m. She entered the code, and the door unlocked. The living room lights were on. From the entrance to the bedroom door, a man's suit and a woman's lingerie were strewn about, revealing the urgency of their actions. Seeing the torn red nightgown at the bedroom door, Nyla felt a sense of absurdity. Although the distance from the entrance to the bedroom was only a few meters, it felt like an eternity to Nyla. Standing at the bedroom door, she felt light-headed and dizzy. She reached out, trembling, and slowly pushed the slightly open door. The sight of the messy bed and the bared couple entwinedâtheir heavy breathing filling the roomâpierced Nyla's heart. The couple was so engrossed that they didn't notice her standing there. Nyla's hand on the door frame turned white from gripping it too hard, leaving red marks on her palm. She had been with Clark for eight years, from school days to marriage, envied by everyone around them. Until today, she had never imagined betrayal between them. Now, reality dealt her a cruel blow. Even the most sincere wedding vows couldn't withstand a fickle heart. Unable to bear the sight, Nyla turned and stumbled out, driving away. She stopped by a bar on the way and decided to go in. ⌠By the time Valarie Weir arrived, Nyla had already downed two bottles of whiskey, her gaze slightly unfocused. "Valarie, you're here..." Seeing Nyla surrounded by several men, Valarie frowned. "All of you, leave!" "No, they're fine hereâ" "I said, leave!" After driving the men away, Valarie sat next to Nyla. "What happened? Did Clark really cheat on you?" Valarie was Nyla's university roommate and had witnessed Nyla and Clarkâs journey from school to marriage. She had seen Clark treat Nyla well all these years, so she couldn't believe he would cheat. Upon hearing Clarkâs name, Nyla's gaze dimmed, and the heart-wrenching pain came rushing back. "I don't want to hear that name right now." Chapter 2 Nyla downed her drink in one gulp. She had never imagined Clark would betray her. Seeing him in bed with another woman felt like a dagger through her heart. "I just can't believe it. He loved you so much. He didn't seem like the type to cheat. Maybe there's a misunderstanding," Valarie suggested. Nyla let out a cold laugh. "I saw it with my own eyes. How could that be a misunderstanding?" The room fell silent. Watching Nyla drink like there was no tomorrow, Valarie grabbed the glass from her hand. "Even if he cheated, you shouldn't punish yourself by getting drunk. What are you going to do now?" "I'm getting a divorce. Just thinking about him with that woman makes me sick." Upon seeing the defiance in Nylaâs red eyes, Valarie's heart ached. "Don't think about it now. You need to rest. Decide what to do next once youâre calm. I'll take you home." Nyla shook her head. "No... I don't want to go back." Returning to that house would only bring back the sickening images of Clarkâs betrayal. Each recollection made her feel nauseous. Seeing Nylaâs reluctance, Valarie didn't insist. "I'll book you a hotel room then." ⌠After booking a room, Valarie took Nyla to the hotel entrance. "Are you sure you don't want me to take you up?" Nyla shook her head. "No, you go rest. I'll be fine." She waved with the room card and walked into the hotel. Seeing Nyla walk steadily, Valarie finally breathed a sigh of relief and drove away once Nyla was inside the hotel. What she didn't know was that Nyla, when drunk, appeared sober but was actually a mess inside. Nyla entered the elevator, scanned her card, and the elevator began to ascend. Soon, the doors opened with a ding. As Nyla stepped out onto the carpet, her legs almost gave out. She steadied herself against the wall, massaging her aching temples while searching for her room number. The wine was taking its toll, and her vision blurred. She found Room 8919 and tried the card on the door. Hearing no beep, she frowned and was about to push the door when it suddenly opened. Nyla froze. Before she could react, a large hand yanked her into the dark room. The door slammed shut, cutting off the light from the hallway. She was pressed against the door, a man's breath hot against her ear, making her shiver. The familiar scent of pine filled her senses, but before she could place it, she felt the warmth of his lips on hers. "Mmph!" Realizing what was happening, Nyla struggled. Damon was strong, and with the wine dulling her strength, her hands felt weak, almost inviting as she pushed against his chest. Damonâs hands roamed her body, leaving a trail of fire, and her body grew more responsive under his touch. Nyla tried to push him away, but he easily caught her wrists and pinned them above her head. "Letâ Mmph! Let me goâŚ" He stopped kissing her and chuckled. "No need to play hard to get." His fingers traced her collar, the cool touch making her shudder. His body heat seemed to melt her, and her legs grew weak. In the dark, Nylaâs senses heightened. She felt Damon unbuttoning her clothes, her mouth dry, her last bit of rationality warning her that this was going too far. "Let me go!" She mustered all her strength to push him, but he simply picked her up and threw her onto the bed. The bed was soft, so Nyla didnât feel pain, but the impact made her head spin. She tried to get up, but Damon pinned her down. Soon, her clothes were gone, and they were both nearly bared. He pressed against her, ready. His dominating presence made her tremble. She pushed against his chest, biting her lip to stay calm and clear-headed. "Mister, I think I entered the wrong room. Please let me goâŚ" Nylaâs voice shook with tension. "Tsk!" Damon's voice was impatient, his tone cold. "Still playing?" He was about to get up and kick Nyla out when the room light suddenly came on. Nyla had accidentally hit the light switch in her struggle. The sudden light made Damon squint. He was shocked when he saw the terrified woman beneath him. Nyla, recognizing Damon, felt the blood drain from her face. The fear sobered her instantly. She couldnât believe itâthe man who almost violated her was Clarkâs uncle, Damon Summer! "Uncle DamonâŚ" Nyla had always been wary of Damon. He was the youngest son of Richard Sumner and Marie Thorne, doted on by them and known for his unpredictable, cold nature. Even outsiders avoided crossing him. When she married Clark, he had warned her to steer clear of Damon. "Shut up!" Damon's face was dark, his gaze icy, as he contemplated whether to silence her for good. Then, his eyes shifted to her bare body, darkening further. He turned away, getting off the bed. "Get dressed and get out!" As Damon moved, Nyla caught a glimpse of him where she shouldn't, and her face turned red with embarrassment. Upon seeing her flushed face, Damon's expression soured even more. "Still not leaving?" Nyla could not care less about her embarrassment as she hastily dressed and left without looking back. Once outside, she checked the room number and realized her mistakeâit wasnât Room 8919, but Room 8916! She had entered the wrong room and almost slept with her husbandâs uncle. The thought made her headache worse. She should have let Valarie take her up. Unfortunately, it was too late for regrets now. After Nyla left, Damon dialed a number with a glower on his face. "Delete all surveillance footage from the Empire Skyview Hotel tonight!" Upon hanging up, he looked at the messy bed and sheets, his irritation growing. He had almost slept with his nephewâs wife... What a mess! Chapter 3 On Nyla's way back, she hesitated for a long time before finally messaging Damon, someone whose contact she had had for three years but had never contacted. Nyla: [Uncle Damon... Can we pretend tonight never happened? I was really drunk and went to the wrong room.] She waited for a long time, but there was no response from Damon. Frowning, she sent another message. Nyla: [?] As soon as she sent it, a red exclamation mark appeared: [You are no longer friends with this user. Please send a friend request to continue chatting.] Nyla bit her lip. Damon had deleted her. He must not want to bring this up again. Relieved, she finally felt a bit of peace. ⌠When Nyla got home, it was already past 6:00 a.m. As soon as she opened the door, she saw Clark sitting on the sofa. He turned sharply at the sound of the door, his eyes bloodshot from a sleepless night. "Where were you last night? I called you dozens of times. Why didnât you answer?" Clark stood up and walked quickly toward her, reaching out to grab her hand, but she pulled away. He froze, about to speak, but she spoke first, her tone icy. "You can stay out all night, but I can't?" Nyla had always been gentle. In their eight years together, they had hardly ever argued. This was the first time she had spoken to him so coldly. Clark sensed something was wrong and noticed her red, swollen eyes. His expression changed, and his hand clenched at his side. "You know, don't you?" His voice was calm, without a trace of guilt or panic, as if he had expected this day to come. Upon seeing his unapologetic demeanor, Nyla's long-suppressed emotions finally exploded. She swung her bag at him, her eyes red with fury, like a madwoman. All the good times they had shared, all the happy moments, were shattered the moment she saw him in bed with another woman. They could never be pieced together again. "Clark Sumner, how could you do something so disgusting?! If you didnât love me anymore, you could have divorced me. Why did you have to hurt me like this?" Nyla had assumed that no third party could ever come between them. Unfortunately, reality gave her a harsh slap, waking her from the lies he had woven and turning her love for him into a joke. Seeing her red, tear-filled eyes, Clark felt a pang in his chest. He grabbed her hand and pulled her into his arms. "Nyla, Iâm sorry..." Nyla shoved him away, wanting to laugh but only tears came. "Donât touch me with your filthy hands! "Is it that hard to stay faithful? "Since we got married, Iâve met many excellent men, and some have shown interest in me. But Iâve never crossed the line. If I can do it, why canât you?!" Clark clenched his fists when he saw the disappointment and anger in her eyes. "Nyla, youâre the only one I love⌠It was just an accident with herâŚ" His explanation sounded so weak that Nyla found it both laughable and nauseating. "So youâre saying I could sleep with another man and then tell you it was an accident? That I may have betrayed you physically, but my heart still belongs to you?" A flash of ruthlessness crossed Clark's eyes. "If you dare, Iâll end you and that man together in bed." Seeing his icy gaze, Nyla felt a chill in her heart. If he knew betrayal was unforgivable, why would he still betray her? She took a deep breath and spoke slowly. "Do you remember what I told you when you proposed?" She had said that if he ever betrayed her, she would not forgive him but leave him. Clarkâs expression changed. "I will not let you leave!" Nyla wiped her tears, her expression a mixture of ridicule and hatred. "Whether you agree or not, Iâve made up my mind. Iâm divorcing you. You donât deserve my forgiveness." With that, she ignored his reaction and went upstairs. Clark stared at her back, his gaze dark. ⌠Back in the bedroom, Nyla went straight to the bathroom to shower, unable to stand the smell of wine on herself. While applying body wash, she noticed red marks on her chest and paused. The image of Damonâs hands roaming her body flashed through her mind, making her frown. She scrubbed the marks hard until the skin around them turned red, trying to erase his touch. After her shower, she saw Clark sitting on the bed with his head down, lost in thought. She frowned and decided to ignore him. They would be divorced soon anyway. Clark looked up and saw Nyla coming out in just a towel. Her damp hair dripped water, her freshly washed face flushed like a blooming rose with an enticing fragrance. The towel barely covered her behinds, revealing her long, fair legs. His breath hitched, his gaze glued on her. Nyla didnât notice Clark's reaction. She walked to the wardrobe to grab her pajamas when a pair of arms suddenly wrapped around her from behind. "Nyla..." Clark's voice was husky, filled with undisguised desire. Clark had been thinking about how to win her back downstairs after she left. The only way he could think of was to have a child with her. He had come upstairs to discuss this with her, planning to take it slow. However, he lost control upon seeing her just out of the shower. In the past, such behavior would have stirred Nyla's feelings, but all she felt now was disgust. She turned and pushed him away, her gaze full of revulsion. "Donât touch me. I feel dirty." Hurt flashed in Clark's eyes. He grabbed her hands, his expression earnest. "Didnât you always want a child? Letâs have one now, okay?" Nyla shook him off at his matter-of-fact attitude. "That was before. I might have a child in the future, but it wonât be yours." Her words enraged Clark. He grabbed her and threw her onto the bed, pinning her down. "Say that again!" His eyes were full of anger, but Nyla didnât care. "It doesnât matter how many times I say it. Iâm disgusted by you. Iâd rather die than have your child." As soon as she finished speaking, Clark kissed her fiercely. Chapter 4 Nyla froze for a moment, then struggled desperately. Just the thought of Clark kissing another woman the night before filled her with disgust and rage. "Let go!" Her struggles were futile against Clark, who only tightened his grip around her waist. As she fought, her towel loosened, revealing her body. His gaze darkened, and he felt a rush of desire. Their bodies were pressed tightly together, and Nyla quickly noticed the change in Clark. Furious, she bit him hard, tasting blood in their mouths. Instead of letting go, Clark's other hand slipped under Nyla's towel. She had nothing on underneath, having just come out of the shower. She stiffened and struggled even more fiercely. "Clark, get off me!" Clark ignored Nyla, his fingers teasing her sensitive spots. "Nyla, you need me too, don't you?" Nylaâs struggles were in vain, and she grew increasingly desperate. As Clark positioned himself, she closed her eyes in despair. "Clark, don't make me hate you." Clark halted abruptly. Seeing Nyla filled with despair and pain, like a fragile porcelain doll about to shatter, made him pause. He wanted her desperately, but a voice in his head warned that if he took her now, it would be the end of them. He stared at her, his hand tightening around her waist. After several tense seconds, he suddenly let go and got off the bed, leaving the room quickly. The door slammed shut with a loud bang, making Nyla flinch. She clutched the blanket tightly. ⌠For the next few days, Clark didn't come home. Nyla called him several times to discuss the divorce, but he didn't respond. ⌠The weekend arrived. Nyla was in the living room, sending out job applications when she heard the front door open. Clark walked in, looking haggard. They stared at each other in silence until Nyla broke it, closing her laptop and standing up calmly. "Since you're back, let's talk about the divorce." Clark frowned. "I told you, I won't divorce you. I'm here to remind you that we have to go to the family dinner tonight." The Sumners held a monthly dinner, and ever since their wedding, Clark and Nyla had attended together. The family wasn't kind to Nyla, often treating her poorly. She endured it because she believed Clark loved her. After seeing him with another woman, however, she couldn't lie to herself anymore. "I don't want to go. Go by yourself." Clarkâs expression turned impatient. "Nyla, how long are you going to keep this up?" He had ignored her calls and messages, hoping she would calm down, but she was still the same. "I'm not keeping anything up. I just want a divorce." Upon hearing the word "divorce", Clark's patience wore thin. He looked at Nyla as if she were unreasonable. "Divorce? You haven't worked since we got married. How will you support yourself? Which company would hire you? And what about your father's exorbitant medical bills? Can you afford those? "Nyla, you're not a teenager anymore. You're 28. It's time to grow up. "I'm the CEO of the Sumner Group. I face temptations all the time. Sometimes, it's hard to resist, but those women will never take your place as my wife. What more do you want?" Clark couldn't understand why Nyla didn't see that he still loved her, even if he couldn't commit to being with her forever. Seeing Clarkâs arrogant demeanor, Nyla couldn't reconcile this man with the shy boy who had once blushed while confessing his love and promising never to hurt her. Maybe this was his true selfâselfish, proud, and condescending. "If being mature means tolerating your infidelity, then I'm sorry, I can't do that. Find someone else. Here are the divorce papers I've had drafted. Sign them when you have time." Clark glanced at the documents, sneering when he saw the section on asset division. "Quite the appetite you have, asking for half my assets. Do you really think that's possible?" "I deserve it. Why not?" Clark chuckled, his tone mocking. "Look around this house. Did you buy anything here? I've been covering your father's medical expenses for years. If we tally things up, you should be paying me. Should I have my lawyer do the math?" As Nyla watched his bitter expression, she couldn't believe she had once loved this man. He had hidden his true self so well that, until she caught him cheating, she had thought he was a great guy. "Don't forget, if it weren't for me giving you that patent, you wouldn't be the Sumner Group's CEO. And you were the one who told me to stay home after we got married. If I had continued my research, I would have earned far more than what you've given me." Unfazed, Clark replied, "Who would believe you about the patent now? "I don't want to argue about money, but if you insist on a divorce, we'll have to settle accounts. Nyla, as long as you drop the divorce idea, my money is still yours to use." "Clark, you're despicable!" Since he refused to divorce, she'd have to sue. She turned to leave, but he blocked her. "Change your clothes. We're going to the family dinner." "I said I'm not going. Tell them I'm not feeling well." Clark grabbed her wrist. "Nyla, I'm running out of patience. Don't force me to cut off your father's medical expenses." "You wouldn't dare!" Clark took out his phone and called his secretary. "Cancel my father-in-law's medical payment for next monthâ" Furious, Nyla grabbed his phone and ended the call. "You're crossing a line, Clark." "Crossing a line?" Clark's gaze was full of contempt as he yanked her closer. "Everything you have is because of me. Don't you think you're the one crossing the line? Change your clothes, or I have numerous ways to make you comply." Chapter 5 Seeing the coldness in Clark's eyes, Nyla realized how blind she had been to fall in love with such a man. Her eyes stung with unshed tears, but she refused to show any vulnerability in front of him. She yanked her hand away, took a deep breath, and headed upstairs. The only thought in her mind was to find a job quickly so she could move out and divorce Clark. She grabbed a random outfit, tied her hair up with a hairpin, and went back downstairs. She was never one to fuss over her appearance. In the past, she had dressed up for the Sumners' gatherings to make a good impression. Now, she couldn't care less. Hearing her footsteps, Clark looked up. Nyla wore a fitted white dress, her waist so slender it seemed it could be encircled with one hand. Her hair was secured with a jade hairpin, revealing her delicate neck. She was breathtakingly beautiful. The grace she exuded was just like when they first met. However, the look in her eyes now was devoid of any warmth. "Letâs go," she said. They drove to the Sumner residence in silence. As they arrived and were about to get out of the car, a black Range Rover sped up and stopped abruptly in front of them. Upon recognizing the car, Clark's expression darkened. It was Damon's car, someone he both feared and disliked. Damon was known for his reckless and unpredictable behavior. He had refused to take over the Sumner Group when Richard wanted him to run the company, choosing to start his own business instead. Everyone had expected him to fail, but within five years, his company had grown to be worth several times more than the Sumner Group. Clark couldn't stand Damon, partly out of jealousy. Once, a comment Clark made about Damon reached Damon's ears, and in retaliation, Damon refused to collaborate with the Sumner Group, costing them millions. Damon rarely attended family dinners, and Clark had hoped to avoid him. Luck wasnât on his side todayâthey met at the door. He didnât notice Nylaâs stiffened expression when she saw Damon get out of his car. Clark opened the car door and greeted, "Uncle Damon." Damon glanced at him indifferently, his gaze briefly landing on the passenger seat before he nodded and walked into the house. Nyla let out a deep breath. When Damon looked her way, she had forgotten to breathe, fearing he might say something outrageous. He was known for his unpredictable nature, always doing whatever he pleased. Fortunately, he said nothing. She decided she needed to talk to him privately later. As Clark and Nyla walked into the living room, they saw it was already filled with people. Richard and Marie, the family heads, were chatting with Damon. He was the kind of person who naturally stood out in a crowd. Noticing Nylaâs gaze on Damon, Clark frowned. "Why are you staring at my uncle?" Nyla withdrew her gaze and replied coolly, "None of your business." Her coldness irritated Clark. "Nyla, you know I donât like you paying attention to other men." Ever since they got together, Clark had been extremely controlling, not allowing Nyla to interact with other men. She used to think this was a sign of his love, but now it seemed laughable. She sneered. "And I donât like you sleeping with other women, but you seem to enjoy it just fine." Clark said through gritted teeth, "This is a family dinner. Weâll deal with this later." "If you donât want me to bring it up, then stay out of my business," she retorted. Clark didnât want to cause a scene now because it might affect the Sumner Group and his standing with Richard, who still held all the companyâs shares. As they talked, Marie called out, "Nyla, Clark, youâre here! Come sit down!" Nyla took a deep breath, forcing a smile as she approached. She might not like the Sumners, but she maintained basic manners. "Hello, Grandpa, Grandma," she greeted with a smile. Marie, who had been urging Damon to settle down and get married, looked pleased to see the couple. "Come, sit down." She turned to Damon with a hint of dissatisfaction. "Look at Clark. He manages the company well and has a beautiful wife. They might have children soon. And you? Almost 30 and still single. If you donât bring a girlfriend next time, donât bother coming!" Damon glanced at the couple with a smirk. "She is indeed beautiful." He just wondered how that petite frame would suffer if she were to have children. Nyla frowned, feeling uncomfortable with Damonâs gaze. Clark also noticed the inappropriate way Damon looked at Nyla. It wasnât the look of an elder but more like a man admiring a woman. His hand clenched into a fist, and his body tensed. Marie sighed. "My point is, when will you bring me a daughter-in-law?" "Depends. If I meet someone I like, maybe Iâll bring her back tomorrow," Damon replied nonchalantly. "Youâre too picky! Iâve arranged a good match for you. Date's tomorrow, donât ruin it." "Then youâll probably have to apologize to another old friend tomorrow." Frustrated, Marie snapped, âYouâre going to drive me crazy!â Damon glanced at Clark. âClark's been married for years. Instead of pushing me, why donât you encourage him to have kids?â Marie nodded, realizing Damon wouldnât listen to her. She turned to Nyla and Clark, her expression softening. âNyla, you and Clark have been married for a few years now. When are you planning to have children?â Chapter 6 Nyla lifted her head to speak, but Clark grabbed her hand and smiled. "Grandma, we're working on it!" Nyla tried to pull her hand away, but Clark's grip was too tight. If he wouldn't let her be, she wouldn't make it easy for him either. She turned to Marie. "Grandma, I'm looking for a job right now, so having children might have to wait." The room fell silent. Clark's grip on Nyla's hand tightened painfully, and she winced. Damon glanced at Clark's hand on Nyla, noticing the bulging veins, then looked away indifferently. Clarkâs aunt, Anne Sumner, sneered. "Nyla, don't blame me for being blunt. You've been married for years. How can you not have a child yet? If it weren't for Clark insisting on marrying you, do you think your family could have ever married into the Sumners? "You should be grateful. If you don't want to have Clark's child, there are plenty of women who do. If someone else steps in, youâll be the one looking silly." Besides, Anne thought, "Who knows if Nyla is fertile?" She sounded like she meant well, but her gaze at Nyla was filled with an air of superiority. Marie frowned at Anne, disapproving. "Anne, enough." Anne pursed her lips but stayed silent. Marie turned back to Nyla with a kind smile. "Nyla, you and Clark are still young. If you don't want children yet, that's fine. Just don't overwork yourself. Our family isn't short on money. You can work if you want, but take it easy." Nyla nodded. "I understand, Grandma." With that, the awkward moment passed, and the room returned to its previous warmth. Seeing the attention shift away, Clark pulled Nyla out of the living room. Once they reached the gazebo in the backyard, he released her. "Nyla, have you lost your mind? Do you want everyone to know about our fight?" Nyla rubbed her sore hand and said, "I was just being honest." "Honest?" Clark scowled. "Should I call your father then?" Harrison Jayston was ill and couldn't handle stress. Nyla planned to divorce Clark before breaking the news to him gently. She glared at Clark. "You wouldnât dare! You were the one who cheated. What right do you have to be so self-righteous?" Clark clenched his hands, a flicker of guilt crossing his face before it was replaced by impatience. "I promised it wouldnât happen again. If you don't want to see Jordyn, I'll fire her. What more do you want?" Nyla felt like there was a communication breakdown between them and turned away. "I don't want to argue with you here." When Clark saw her red-rimmed eyes, he softened. "Nyla, I truly know I was wrong. Just don't mention divorce, and I'll make it up to you. I love you. I can't let you go." Nyla found it laughable. How could he claim to love her while being with another woman? Just thinking about him with someone else made her sick. "I will never forgive you." Betrayal was her bottom line. She couldnât pretend nothing had happened or reconcile with him. Clark knew Nyla well enough to understand that he had to be patient. He believed she still had feelings for him. Otherwise, she would have made a bigger scene when she found out. As long as he refused to divorce her, she would eventually forgive him. "Fine, we won't talk about it now. If you don't want kids yet, weâll postpone it to two years later. Since you want to work, I'll have my secretary find you a position at the Sumner Group." Nyla laughed at his arrangement, a mocking look in her eyes. "Clark, do you see me as a puppet you can control?" Hurt by her gaze, Clark frowned. "How am I controlling you? You don't want kids now, so I agreed to wait two years. You want to work, so I'll arrange it. What more do you want?" "Stop pretending. I don't want kids because I want a divorce. I want to work to sever ties with you." Clark looked at Nyla's stubborn face, displeased. Since their wedding, she had been like a canary in his cage. He couldn't let her go. "As long as I don't agree, this marriage won't end. Even if you tell a lawyer I cheated, do you have proof?" Clark's confident tone and controlling demeanor made Nyla step back, trembling with anger. She finally saw how selfish and disgusting he was. She had wasted eight yearsâthe best years of her life, from 18 to 26âloving this man. "You make me sick, Clark!" Seeing the undisguised disgust in Nyla's eyes, Clar | LEARN_MORE | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692& | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 988 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | findedc.com | DCO | https://findedc.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15692&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/468488068_484333964060835_7423614745601675335_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=5cmaqKshlcwQ7kNvgENnxeo&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Al-BgLHW88QiakSkDEYKmPL&oh=00_AYDiw7-D6UMqCnPSUIEbxnCbMmodpYo154gRxNebtKv8gg&oe=678B79AE | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete |
Page 10 of 12, showing 20 record(s) out of 234 total